Sinful-Hearts (3º)
Sinful-Hearts (3º)
Sinful-Hearts (3º)
DARK HEARTS
BOOK THREE
JAGGER COLE
Sinful Hearts
Jagger Cole © 2023
All rights reserved.
Cover and interior design by Plan 9 Book Design
Photography by Ren Saliba
This is a literary work of fiction. Any names, places, or incidents are the product of the author’s
imagination. Similarities or resemblance to actual persons, living or dead, or events or establishments,
are solely coincidental.
No part of this book may be reproduced, scanned, or distributed in any printed or electronic form
without prior written permission from the author, except for the use of brief quotations in a book
review.
The unauthorized reproduction, transmission, distribution of, or use of this copyrighted work in the
training of AI is illegal and a violation of US copyright law.
Playlist
Trigger Warning
Chapter 1
Chapter 2
Chapter 3
Chapter 4
Chapter 5
Chapter 6
Chapter 7
Chapter 8
Chapter 9
Chapter 10
Chapter 11
Chapter 12
Chapter 13
Chapter 14
Chapter 15
Chapter 16
Chapter 17
Chapter 18
Chapter 19
Chapter 20
Chapter 21
Chapter 22
Chapter 23
Chapter 24
Chapter 25
Chapter 26
Chapter 27
Chapter 28
Chapter 29
Chapter 30
Chapter 31
Chapter 32
Chapter 33
Chapter 34
Chapter 35
Chapter 36
Chapter 37
Epilogue
Savage Heir
Also by Jagger Cole
About the Author
PLAYLIST
This book contains darker themes and graphic depictions of past trauma, as
well as mentions of SA. While these scenes were written to create a more
vivid, in-depth story, they may be triggering to some readers. Please read
with that in mind.
1
ELSA
"Pardon?” I sputter.
My boss smirks wryly as she finishes adjusting her own mask. Hers is a far
simpler gold and matte black piece that just hides the top half of her face—as
opposed to mine, more hood than mask, which covers that plus my hair, all
the way down to the nape of my neck. Oh, and it has cat ears. I look like
some kind of kinky feline Fifty-Shades-themed bank robber.
Given that Club Venom is an actual, honest-to-God sex club, and she’s a
member, I’m inclined to believe her.
Meanwhile, I feel like I’m standing on the edge of a skyscraper, about to try
BASE jumping for the first time. Blindfolded.
My pulse hums in my veins. My mouth feels dry. Sweat slicks the small of
my back.
“Elsa.”
“Hey, I’m just kidding.” Her brows knit. “Probably. It’s just that Dante has a
certain…reputation, as you might be able to guess.”
“One that I’m sure has nothing to do with his reputed mafia connections,
wealth, good looks, and the fact that he owns this place.”
Taylor grins, taking a sip of the champagne that the staff opened for us when
we were ushered in here to get ready.
“Ah, now there’s the sharp legal mind I hired you for.”
“To be clear, I don’t actually think you’d screw a potential client, Elsa. I just
want you to be prepared. He’s a bit of a charmer…” she frowns. “Okay, he’s
a lot of a charmer. And given that he’s…”
“Outrageously good-looking?”
She chuckles, but even though she turns away, I can spot the slight hint of
pink in her cheeks creeping down from under the mask.
Taylor Crown is the “Crown” in the wildly prestigious New York City law
firm, and the “Black” is actually two brothers—Alistair and Gabriel. They’re
both great, too. But it’s Taylor who’s really taken me under her wing.
We’re here tonight for our first official sit-down with Dante Sartorre, the
majority owner of Club Venom and Crown and Black’s newest potential
client. It’s not lost on me that two women in slinky black cocktail dresses
with plunging necklines suit Dante’s playboy reputation at bit better than,
say, Gabriel or Alistair—or any other man, for that matter. But that’s the
game, and I understand completely.
It doesn’t make me any less freaked the fuck out to walk out there, though.
The nerves, though, aren’t just because Club Venom is a kink club catering
mostly to New York City’s dark, dangerous, and powerful. They’re not just
because I fully understand that Taylor choosing me to come with her tonight
is a big deal, and I want to impress her.
The nerves are because I’m not merely here for work.
I’m also here on a mission. But I’m the only one who knows that.
Taylor takes a deep breath, glancing over herself once more in the mirror
before turning to me.
“Ready?”
“Absolutely.”
“Oh, I mean, it’s more than fine. For this place?” She smirks. “Trust me, you
look fantastic. No, I meant, are you going to be comfortable in it?”
I mean, it’s an S&M black and gold mask with cat ears made from leather
and lace covering basically my entire head except my chin, cheeks, and
mouth.
Everyone in this club, patrons and staff alike, will be wearing masks. But for
the reason I’m here—beyond the business meeting with Dante Sartorre—I
need mine to hide who I am completely, with one hundred percent certainty.
Whoever I pick tonight cannot know who I am. I understand that in a city of
ten million people, my chances of being recognized are next to zero. But I
want it to be absolutely zero. That’s the whole point. That’s the only way I’ll
actually be able to go through with this, not to mention how I’ll keep my
nerves from spilling out all over the floor like raw spaghetti.
“I’m good!” I smile with an eagerness and ease I don’t remotely feel. “I kind
of like it, actually.”
Taylor grins, arching her brow as her gaze rises. “The ears are a cute touch.
All right, shall we?”
“Let’s.”
As Taylor finishes her glass of champagne, I turn and pull my phone out of
my bag. I send a quick note to my sister Nora, reminding her that I’ll be
home late from my business meeting. She sends back a thumbs-up emoji
followed by a gif of Juno Temple from Ted Lasso smugly smirking with the
caption “you’ve totally got this”.
I grin and start to tuck the phone away when it suddenly buzzes again. This
time, when I glance at the message, my smile vanishes, and a cold, black
dread burrows into my heart.
I’m not waiting any longer. You will do as I’ve said. Meet me
tonight, or there will be consequences I do not think you are
prepared to deal with.
I stare, nauseated, at the text from the man I hate and loathe.
The man who seemingly has followed me all the way to New York.
Leo thinks he has power over me. But tonight, I’m going to shatter those
chains he thinks he’s bound me with.
Because tonight, I’m going to fuck a stranger.
At a sex club.
“Just be sure to leave that here,” Taylor says. “There’s no phones allowed in
the club.”
“Oh, of course.” I quickly close the phone and shove it back in my bag. “I’m
guessing that’s part of the reason a man like Mr. Sartorre prefers to have
business meetings here?”
She smirks. “Ding ding ding. All right, game faces on. Remember, the fact
that he’s even offered this meeting at all speaks volumes. He wants to work
with us. We just need to show him exactly how much easier his life will be
when he does.”
No big deal.
Outside the private changing room, two black-masked staff in suits hand us
two more flutes of champagne. Then two masked women in flimsy, see-
through black gauze cocktail dresses approach, each holding a matte black
suitcase. They hold them up and open them, revealing two matching
collections of elegant wristbands in varying designs and color combinations.
“Uh-huh.”
“The green is—” Taylor clears her throat, eyeing me. “You know what? Let’s
just make this easy for both of us. We’re here for business, so let’s go with
the white and gold. It means you’re a voyeur only.”
“Oh, cool.”
“Elsa?”
I glance at Taylor.
“Relax. I didn’t bring you tonight because I thought you had an extensive
background in sex clubs or knowledge of the kink lifestyle,” she says with a
reassuring smile. “I brought you because you’re the most promising and
brilliant young attorney I know. Okay?”
“Thank you.”
She nods, putting a hand on my shoulder as she leans close. “For the record,
I’m only a member here because it’s where clients like to meet. Don’t worry.
This isn’t my scene, either. We’re here for Dante, nothing more. So let’s go
out there and kill it.”
The pep talk definitely helps my nerves. So does knocking back the rest of
my champagne in one gulp. Then, wristbands on, we follow our two masked
guides further down the hall. The music grows louder. A murmuring din of
people talking washes over me. But when it begins to be punctuated by
gasping moans of female pleasure, my pulse jumps and my skin tingles.
Then we step out into the main room, and my jaw drops.
Holy. Shit.
The room is opulently decorated, full of couches and chairs for the elegant,
masked onlookers. More guests talk amongst themselves by two cocktail bars
along the sides of the room. But the main focus—and it’s impossible not to
focus on it—is the writhing, thrusting, moaning and grunting mass of bodies
tangled in extremely creative ways across the large beds and couches in the
center of the room.
A gorgeous, dark-skinned woman, utterly naked but for her wristband and a
gold and black mask, gasps in ecstasy as the muscled man bending her over
the arm of the couch rams into her. When a second man tangles his fingers in
her long braids and guides her mouth to his rock-hard cock, my eyes bulge
and my face turns the color of the blood-red hallway we just walked through.
Beside them on the same couch, two blonde women with gravity-defying
breasts ride a tattooed, Italian-looking guy who is lying on his back—one of
them bouncing up and down on his dick, the other grinding her pussy against
his mouth. Another couple fuck on the floor like it’s an Olympic event and
they’re going for gold, and a foursome on an oversized bed behind them
tangles in ways that I wouldn’t have thought logistically possible, like an X-
rated game of Twister.
I’ve seen sex before. It’s just that I’ve never, well, seen sex before. Not
really. Not like this. I mean, no, I might have never gotten around to doing it
myself. I’ve watched plenty of online porn, though.
“It’s a bit of a shock the first time,” Taylor murmurs quietly next to me. She
turns to arch a brow, smiling. “Are you okay?”
“Oh, yeah, no, of course,” I shrug as casually as I can. “It’s just sex.
Everyone has it, right?”
Taylor smiles. “Exactly. Ah, here he is. I’d recognize those shoulders
anywhere.”
I turn from the orgy in front of us, following her gaze to the tall, powerfully
built man in his mid-thirties striding across the room toward us. He’s wearing
an impeccably cut dark suit, clearly custom tailored, and even with the gold
and black mask covering the top half of his face, it’s obvious he’s extremely
handsome.
Taylor gives him a cool, professional nod and handshake. But when he brings
her hand to his lips and kisses the back of it, I can see her cheeks heat.
“And you must be Ms. Guin,” he purrs, turning his dark eyes to me. I shiver
as I take his hand. Mercifully, he doesn’t kiss mine.
“It’s a pleasure to meet you, Mr. Sartorre.”
He smirks, glancing at Taylor and then back to me. “Please, just Dante. It’s a
little difficult to be so formal with all that going on ten feet away, isn’t it?”
He nods his chin at the live-action porn movie writhing and moaning behind
us. My face heats as something wicked pools in my core.
Dante clears his throat, clasping his hands together as he turns to Taylor.
“Slight change of plans. I appreciate you bringing additional talent from your
firm tonight. But I’d prefer to hammer out the details of our arrangement
between just the two of us.”
“I can assume that the business I would be bringing to your firm would get
me a named partner as my personal attorney?”
“Of course.”
“It is. And I’d like to start now. I’m prepared to sign our contract here
tonight.”
Taylor turns to glance at me, then back to Dante. “Would you give the two of
us a moment?”
She shakes her head. “No, I’m fine. Trust me, I can handle a man like him.
I’m just sorry to have dragged you out tonight for nothing. Please, feel free to
leave.”
When I nod, she turns back to Dante. “Well, lead the way.”
He turns to Taylor, extending an arm that she loops hers through. They start
to walk away toward what looks like a private room, when Taylor glances
over her shoulder to arch a questioning brow at me.
I mouth “I’m going to go” with a jerk of my thumb, and she nods with a
smile before she and Dante disappear through the guarded door.
My pulse thuds.
My skin tingles.
My original plan for the night, which I went over as meticulously as if I were
planning to storm of the beaches of Normandy, was…complex. It involved
arriving with Taylor, doing the pitch meeting with Dante, and then leaving
with Taylor. At which point, I’d make up an excuse of wanting to wait for my
own ride, stall until Taylor was gone, and then re-enter the club alone. But
now that Taylor’s busy, well, I guess I’ve fast forwarded to the alone part.
As a guest, I have full access to the club for the night. Which I very much
planned to use in my master plan to find a stranger, lose my virginity, and
thereby break Leo’s hold on me and shatter his fucked-up interest in me.
I’ve been his pawn for too long, no matter how well I’ve avoided him. That
ends tonight.
But first…Christ, I need another fucking drink.
Shivering with heat, I pull my gaze from the lurid scene playing out before
me and make my way to one of the bars.
“Double vodka and soda, please,” I blurt to the bartender. When he brings it,
I suck half of it down quickly before I turn to let my eyes slide around the
room, heart pounding.
It’s no big deal. Or at least, it doesn’t have to be. It’s just sex, and like I just
said oh-so-airily to Taylor, everyone has it.
Except me.
I chew on my lip, my gaze sliding across the room and finally landing on a
built, older, bearded man. He seems to feel me looking at him, because he
turns and arches a dark brow behind his mask. A hungry smile curls the
corners of his lips, and I blush.
Maybe?
But then my eyes drop to the band on his wrist: red, with black lines.
According to Taylor, that marks him as a sadistic Dom.
No fucking way.
My eyes land on a tall man with short, buzzed hair and a clean jaw, with
tattoos on his neck. The mix of clean cut and dangerous catches my interest,
and I blush when he turns to grin and raise his glass in my direction…
…Until the brunette I didn’t realize was on his arm turns to grin at me as
well, curling a finger at me.
Shaking my head, I sigh and turn back to the bar, realizing I’ve somehow
finished my drink already. I’m in the middle of ordering another when
suddenly a laughing voice cuts through everything and instantly sends my
stomach plummeting to the floor and my heart rate through the roof.
I swallow, my face turning white as I slowly slide my head around. His back
is to me. His face is partially covered. But when he brings his hand up to
shove his fingers through his long, dark hair, and I see the tattoo on his wrist
and back of the hand that I’ve seen dozens of times—including earlier today
—I know damn well who it is.
For one frozen moment, I consider running. Or at least slinking away and
hoping to God and everything else that is good and holy that I can get out of
there and change back into boring, buttoned-up, straight-laced Elsa before he
realizes it’s me in the scandalous black dress and the S&M kitten mask.
There are a million bars in New York City. Tinder is a thing. It’s not like it
would be remotely difficult for me to get laid the very second I wanted to.
But the entire point of doing this at Club Venom tonight was total anonymity.
And now here I am a foot away from a man whose family I work for, whom I
see several times a week, for fuck’s sake.
A man with dark hair, tanned skin, piercing ice-blue eyes, and a jawline sharp
enough to cut glass. A man with a body built for sin, carved out of marble, a
testament to the hours he’s poured into working on it in boxing gyms and at
the underground fights he’s known for.
A man who’s also known for his endlessly revolving door of women.
Hades Drakos, the dark crown prince of the Drakos Greek mafia family.
Viciously ruthless.
And the thing is, I could ignore all of those things. After all, it’s Ares, not
Hades, whom I officially report to. And Hades could be just one more
sinfully good-looking if jaw-grindingly annoying and cocky man one could
observe from a distance, and then forget about.
Except for the fact that I am wholly incapable of actually doing the second
part.
I can’t forget about him. I can’t ignore him. And despite how very, very badly
I want to be immune to his charms, apparently I am not up to date with my
Hades vaccinations.
As much as I want to pretend he doesn’t even exist, I simply can’t. He’s the
central character in every single dark fantasy I have once the lights go out at
night.
It’s bullshit.
Hades is living proof that what the mind wants and what the body wants are
not in alignment. Because he makes me want to scream and tear my hair out.
But he also makes me want to scream for him, while he pulls my hair.
She grins widely. “I don’t think my boyfriend would like that very much.”
“You’re so bad,” she gushes, slapping his chest again, and this time leaving
her hand there.
Oh, just get on your knees and blow him right here, Little Miss Obvious.
I roll my eyes again, turning and slugging down three huge gulps of my
second vodka soda.
“Did I really?” Hades growls, shoving his hair back from his face again.
“M-hmm. Krista Pryce. She said you literally redefined sex for her.” The girl
giggles obnoxiously again. “She also said you had a magic dick, not to
mention huuuge.”
I make a face, turning away to slug down more vodka. This was a big
mistake. I should leave before Hades recognizes me and makes it his mission
never to let me forget about that time he saw me dressed like a literal sex
kitten at a fucking kink club. Or at the very least, I should leave before this
chick starts blurting out more details about Hades than I have any need to
know.
Something dark bubbles under the surface of my skin, and I grit my teeth.
No.
No no no.
I try and shove the thought away, but it’s already sunk its claws into me, and
they’re holding on tight.
Slowly I turn back to let my eyes drag over Hades’ broad shoulders and
muscled frame beneath his tailored black suit.
He might be an arrogant dick and a pain in my ass. Well, no might about it,
he is. But like it or not, if the rumors and tabloid stories are to be believed,
the man standing right in front of me is undeniably something else as well:
God’s gift to the female orgasm.
If the whole point of the evening was, and is, to get this over with already…
why not do it with a man like Hades, who obviously very much knows what
he’s doing?
I ignore the worried voice in my head as I turn to the bartender and order two
shots of vodka, chilled. The first goes down easily, and I can feel it doing its
job already as I feel myself loosen up.
I’m wearing a mask. My distinct white-blonde hair is covered. And this has
got to be the last place on earth Hades would ever expect to find buttoned-up
prim and proper Elsa Guin, attorney-at-law.
There’s my voice, of course. The London accent could give me away pretty
quickly. But I have a solution for even that.
I take one more breath, still feeling like I’m standing at the edge of a cliff,
trying to decide if I’m really going to jump or not.
In one motion, before I can second guess myself or chicken out, I slug back
the second shot of vodka, grab Hades’ jacket, and yank him around to face
me. His brow furrows, his gorgeous, sinfully dangerous icy-blue eyes stab
right into me.
But I don’t give them any time to do their damage. Instead, I grab his tie, rise
up on the balls of my feet, and yank his mouth down to mine.
All of it. The music, the people, the anxiety, Leo and his threats, the orgy,
even the girl huffing behind him before she stalks off. It all fades away until
all I know is the feel of his perfect lips crushed to mine.
I have no idea how long I kiss him for. A minute? Three hours? Forever? But
when he pulls away, something hooks into us. Something that sizzles and
ignites as his eyes scorch into me like blue flames.
I takes everything I have not to gasp, or maybe to pull away and run, when I
see the dark shadow slide over his eyes, turning the ice blue to the color of a
vicious hurricane.
Giddy, even.
Hades’ jaw grinds as his eyes slide over me lustily, hungrily. I’ve honestly
never had a man look at me with such obvious fire before. But why would
anyone hold that back, here at a sex club of all places?
But he doesn’t do that. He just brushes past me, letting his fingers slide over
my hip. I shudder, my breath catching as my eyes close, waiting for the
pounce.
Swallowing, I turn to see him continuing on across the dimly-lit room. The
walls are a deep blood red like the hallway downstairs, the floor and ceiling
are the same matte black, and the furniture is all done in matching tones of
matte black, blood red, and gold.
Yeah, no. I’m creeping past buzzed right now. If I have anything else, I’m
going to be full on drunk, and I don’t think I want that.
Then, in the single boldest move of my entire life, I lock my eyes with his,
reach up, and slip the straps from my shoulders. The dress slips down my
body, pooling on the floor around my black high heels with golden bows on
them. I’m not wearing a bra, because in what world do you wear a bra with a
dress like this? Which leaves me standing there in front of a man, for the very
first time, in only cream lace panties and my heels. And the mask, of course.
Hades’ jaw clenches, his eyes roaming over my body. I can feel myself grow
warm under his gaze, my nipples puckering to points in the sultry heat of the
room.
He smiles slowly, grinning at me as he takes off his jacket and folds it neatly
across the back of the couch. He removes his tie as well, undoing the top few
buttons of his shirt as he sits.
I cringe, realizing how clumsily I blurted that out. Okay, maybe I’m more
nervous than I think.
“I…” There’s no use in lying. Plus I’m remembering a law professor I had
back at Cambridge who used to joke about only breaking one law at a time.
I’m already hiding who I am from a man that I know and work with, for the
express purpose of him taking my virginity—without knowing it, or me.
I stiffen. He grins.
“And here I was just about to ask you yours, silly me.”
I shiver.
“And I think you like that you’re about to get fucked by a man whose name
you don’t know, and who doesn’t know yours.”
He sinks back into the couch, eyeing me with smoldering blue eyes. I shift on
my heels, suddenly wondering if I do want that drink to calm my nerves. My
arms cross my chest, as if making a pathetic attempt to cover my bare breasts.
Slowly, Hades raises a hand. Heat flushes my cheeks as he curls two fingers,
beckoning me over.
“Come.”
I shiver, heat pulsing inside of me and mixing with my nerves. For the first
time, my eyes drop to the band on his wrist—green, with black lines.
Fuck me. I have no idea what that means. Taylor didn’t get that far. And
suddenly, a little fear sinks into me.
Red meant sadomasochism. White was observing. But green? What the hell
does green mean he’s into? Hurting me? Or me hurting him?Tying me up?
Something involving urine? No, that would have to be yellow, surely.
I blanch, suddenly realizing I may have just bitten off way more than I can
chew.
“It means I’m a Dom,” he growls quietly, watching where my eyes have
landed. “Since it’s your first time here.”
“Oh.”
“It’s not red because I’m not specifically interested in hurting or humiliating
you, if that’s where that fear in your eyes is coming from.”
“I…maybe a little.”
“You, however, are a puzzle. Your white and gold says you’re just here to
look. But you grabbed and kissed me, most emphatically.”
I blush.
“And you’ve definitely got submissive written all over you. So: yes or no,
right now. Are we going to play, little kitten, or am I going to leave?”
It’s now or never. Do or die. I could stop this whole insane plan right now.
“Good girl.”
My face burns. But slowly, I start to move across the floor toward the
gorgeous, dangerous man sitting on the couch.
I crawl all the way over to him, ending up between his spread legs. I shiver
when Hades’ hand reaches down, cupping my jaw and tilting my head up, so
that my eyes lock with his.
“Good kitten.”
Which is exactly when he kisses me again. His lips hungrily slam down to
mine, his tongue once again invading my mouth. And I let him, willingly. I
moan, shuddering as the eroticism and the craziness of it all hits me like a
drug.
I whimper when he nips at my lip before pulling away. His eyes burn hotly as
he pats the empty seat on the couch next to him.
A nervous sort of energy at the way he’s ordering me around and, oddly,
calling me “kitten”, explodes through my core. But so does desire, hot and
hungry, and I crawl up onto the couch.
Shit.
I swallow, forcing a brave note into my voice that I don’t really feel.
Without warning, his hand suddenly raises to my neck, and I shiver as his
fingers wrap around my throat. There’s no pressure, but it’s a small gesture
reminding me that at least for tonight, in this room, I’m his.
His fingers trail down over my collarbone and drift between my breasts. My
breath comes faster and faster, because everywhere he moves is somewhere
I’ve never been touched like this before. His finger traces up the slope of one
breast, and he rolls the nipple under this thumb. I shudder, gasping as heat
explodes between my legs.
“Turn around.”
I’m frozen in place.
“I—”
“Take your fucking panties off,” he growls. “Show me how fucking wet your
little pussy is. And do it slowly.”
Trembling, my face throbbing, I reach back, still bent over, and slip my
fingers into my underwear. I peel it down, feeling the throb in my face only
grow hotter and spread further across my body. The lace clings to my arousal
for a moment before peeling away, the panties dropping down my thighs to
my knees on the couch.
Until suddenly, I feel something I’ve never felt before. And it feels like pure.
Fucking. Sin.
I cry out as Hades’ tongue drags up my lips, parting them, tasting how
unbelievably wet I am. A moan rips from my mouth—hungry and eager—as
he growls into me. His strong, powerful hands grip my ass, pulling me harder
against his mouth and lewdly spreading me open as his tongue plunges into
me, like he’s fucking me with it.
He doesn’t go slow. He’s not doing this to tease me.
It feels amazing.
His tongue drags up and down my pussy, curling around my clit. His lips
wrap around the throbbing, engorged nub, sucking away as my mouth falls
open in a silent scream. Pleasure explodes through my whole body as his
fingers dig into my skin and his tongue pushes deep into my pussy.
I start to come undone. My vision blurs, my arms shaking, then giving out.
My face drops to the couch with my ass shamelessly up in the air as the god
of the underworld turns me completely inside out with his wicked, sinful
tongue.
His palm suddenly comes down hard on my ass, the spank ripping a sudden
cry of pleasure from my slack mouth. He does it again, and again, until my
skin is raw with heat.
The spanks keep coming, and his tongue is merciless on my clit as I choke
my pleasure against the couch, my nails digging into the upholstery. His lips
wrap around my throbbing clit just as his palm crashes down against my ass
again, and suddenly, I lose all control.
My eyes roll back in my head as my face caves in. The sob of pleasure rips
from my throat, my entire body shaking and trembling. I shamelessly push
my hips back against his tongue as I come for what seems like an eternity
until I’m collapsing on the couch in a shivering, shuddering pile.
Which is exactly when he pulls my limp, trembling body into his lap. I moan
as my legs spread to either side of his hips, realizing that somehow he’s
naked now too. I stare at him, my mouth hanging open as I truly drink in the
sight of Hades Drakos in all his savage, raw, sexual glory.
His tanned skin covered with tattoos. His bulging shoulders and powerfully
muscled arms. The flat strength of his chest, and the unreal grooves of his
chiseled abs and the lines of his hips pointing down to…
Holy. Shit.
I don’t realize I’m staring at his enormous, hard, throbbing cock until I hear
the low growl in his throat. Then I’m gasping as he takes my hand and pulls it
to him. He curls my small fingers around his thickness and drags his gaze up
to mine as I sit astride his muscled hips.
“Now be a good little kitten and take my cock. I want you to guide me into
that sweet little dripping cunt, and I want you to take every fucking inch of
me like a good girl.”
Sweet. Jesus.
The way he talks is so outrageously filthy and sexual that it makes my very
skin tingle with need. I chew on my lip, shivering, as my chest rises and falls
heavily with my breath.
This is it.
I’m shaking slightly as I rise up, using my hand to guide the swollen head of
his gorgeous cock against my slick pussy lips. I’m usually
somewhat…cavalier when it comes to maintenance down there. But knowing
I was coming here tonight, to do this, I’ve shaved myself smooth. And the
sensation of the silken head of his cock against my soft, bare lips takes my
breath away.
I start to lower myself, eyes rolling back as I feel his head part my folds and
sink into me.
And then suddenly, my eyes are staring wide as his strong fingers wrap
around my throat.
He’s so fucking big, and I’m fairly petite, not to mention, I’ve never fucking
done this before. But I’m also so wet that I can literally feel it dripping down
his length over my fingers.
So I push down, gasping as I feel him open me up more and more, pushing
deeper. There’s a sudden sharp pain that makes me wince, but when he
growls and rocks his hips up deeper, the discomfort melts into pleasure as his
cock ploughs into me.
Hades uses one hand to take both of my wrists, pinning them together at the
small of my back. The fingers of the other tighten around my throat.
Every. Single. Inch of him slides inside me to the hilt. I cry out, the choked
sound of my pleasure filling the room as I shudder in ecstasy.
“Good kitten.”
And then, he starts to fuck me. Not make love to me. Not tease me. Not move
with me. Fuck me.
Hades fucks like he’s breaching the walls of a city that dared to defy him, and
I’m the evening’s conquest.
It’s insane.
I moan wildly as he bounces me up and down on his thickness, using his grip
on my neck and wrists to guide me, as if I’m his personal sex toy. My back
arches in pleasure, my mouth hanging open as the pressure and the insanity
and the purely sinful heat of his savageness explodes through me.
I’m wetter than I’ve ever been, bouncing hard and deep on his fat cock. With
a snarl he sits up, his mouth fastening around a nipple and biting—fucking
biting—it. The effect it has on my body is immediate, like electricity
crackling through me. I can feel myself tighten around him, the pleasure
almost overwhelming as his mouth attacks one nipple and then the next,
before moving on to my neck.
My eyes roll back in my head, and I moan wildly, losing all fucking control
of myself and any idea of reality as he sucks hard on the soft skin of my neck.
He rams into me over and over, biting and sucking and mauling my neck
once, twice, three times as the room spins around me.
“I can feel how greedy your messy little pussy is, kitten,” he rasps into my
ear. “So. Fucking. Desperate for my big, fat cock. So eager for my fucking
cum.”
“If you want it, you’re going to have to earn it, kitten.”
He leans back against the couch, dropping his grip on my wrists but keeping
it around my neck.
“Fuck my cock, kitten. Fuck it good and milk that cum out of my fucking
balls.”
Something changes within me. My customary self, with my usual sense of
utter control over everything, is already lying shattered in ruins around us.
But the way he speaks to me, and the way he dominates me, and touches me,
and fucks me is so consuming that something washes over me.
And when it does, I let go. I let go of my shame and my anxieties. I let go of
the chains of my past and the confines of my life, so prim and proper up till
now.
I let go, and I fucking ride him to Kingdom come, bouncing up and down on
Ares’ god-like cock as the room melts around me. As my back arches, and
my nails drag down his chest and abs. As my eyes lock with his through the
masks, his fingers squeezing around my throat.
When I do, it’s like a fucking hurricane smashing into a coastline and
destroying it. It’s a shift in reality. A force of nature. I scream as I explode,
and then suddenly, his mouth is crushing to mine, swallowing my cries and
my moans, as if he owns those too.
I feel his cock swelling even more as he groans into my mouth, followed by
the hot flood of his cum spilling into me.
Suddenly, we’re rolling over. Suddenly, my back is against the couch with
my legs spread wide around his hips.
“What—”
“Oh, kitten,” he growls, lowering his mouth to my neck and biting down
hard. “We’re just getting started.”
I LOSE track of the hours. But after four rounds of the most deviant, insane,
body-breaking sex, and more orgasms than I can possibly count, the room is
finally quiet. Hades is asleep next to me, his arm wrapped around me
possessively, keeping me next to him.
Lighter. Freer.
The Elsa that Hades knows was never here. He won’t ever know it was me.
Because that was exactly the plan, however derailed it got when I picked him
instead of a stranger.
But so be it.
It is what it is.
Wincing, I carefully slip out from under his arm. He stirs, but keeps sleeping
as I quietly cross the room and quickly pull my panties and dress back on. I
carry my heels in my hands as I cross the room back to the bed and lean over
him, kissing his cheek softly.
With a grunt, I raise my head from the conference table at the sound of my
sister’s voice. Callie leans against the table, eying me with a mix of
amusement and genuine concern. Except that the mix is probably closer to
ninety percent amusement and maybe ten percent concern, rather than fifty-
fifty.
“What?”
She snickers. “This.” When she raises the iced coffee and gives it a tempting
shake, the fatigue and the pain from last night start to fade just a bit. I usually
take it black, but I don’t even care that it’s got tons of milk and probably way
too much sugar in it.
At this point, it could be laced with diesel fuel and fucking arsenic, and I’d
probably still slug it back gratefully.
Callie grins. “Nope. For realsies, take it. You look like shit.”
“Well fuck you, too,” I mutter through a shallow smirk as I pluck the offered
plastic cup from her hand. I suck greedily on the straw and immediately
regret it.
“Christ, did you actually get any coffee with your sugar today?”
“It’s gonna taste like nothing but your motherfucker of a hangover when I
take it back because you’re being an ungrateful dick.”
Her hand darts out as if to snatch it back. But I pull away, taking another
heavy slug. Tooth-rotting dose of sugar or not, somewhere in this candy-
sweet mix is some caffeine. Presumably, at least. As I swallow, my nose
wrinkles.
I wrinkle my nose. My sister rolls her eyes again. “Dude, come on. Gift
horse. Mouth. No peeking. You ever heard that one?”
But in my exhausted, beaten-up state, I’m too slow for Callie’s sugar-fueled
speed as she plucks the cup from my hand again.
I sigh, rolling the ache out of my shoulders and shoving my fingers through
my hair. “I’m not hungover.”
“Jeez. Could’ve fooled me.” Callie glances at her watch. “How is it that
we’re the early ones?”
She’s got a point. Of all my siblings, Callie tends to be my partner in minor
clock-related crimes. Like being late for family dinners. Or to meetings called
by our oldest brother Ares, the relatively new head of the Drakos family
empire.
That’s actually why we’re here today: a full family meeting in the brand
spanking new offices of Thermopylae Acquisitions—so named after the place
where the fabled three hundred Spartan warriors held their ground against
thousands, because our grandmother Dimitra truly believes we’re the
descendants of the shirtless guys with the CGI abs from the movie 300 and
nobody can convince her otherwise.
My little sister snickers as she drops into the chair next to me. “Well, I was
checking in at The Banshee on my way in. So I was practically right around
the corner.”
She grins widely, the excitement shining in her eyes. “Oh my God, it’s
looking so awesome. You’re coming to the soft opening next month, right?”
Recently Callie, my sister-in-law Neve, and her sister Eilish went in together
on buying an older Irish pub in the West Village. At first, I was skeptical,
figuring Callie just wanted a place to party. But as they’ve gone through the
process of remodeling the place into an amazing spot complete with a
basement lounge and small stage, hiring staff, and working on branding and
marketing, the more I’m convinced Callie might actually be a natural at this.
I grunt noncommittally. When she sighs and passes the coffee back to me, I
force another mouthful of not-even-close-to-milk and sugar down my throat.
Callie gives me a smug look.
“Shall I bother asking what her name was, or should we stick to something
easier for you to remember, like hair color? Or maybe cup size?”
“Wow. Have you actually made your way through every single woman in
New York so that you have to bat for the other team now?”
“Oh, we’ve got all the jokes today, don’t we,” I mutter. “Sean Farrell. And
again, I’m not hungover. I’m fucking sore. That motherfucker put my ass
through the wringer last night.”
Callie bites back a snorting laugh. “There are so many tasteless jokes I could
make right now.”
She chuckles. “Yeah yeah yeah, I know.” She arches a brow. “I'm not
surprised you're seriously hurting this morning. Sean is a beast.”
Sean Farrell, aka the son of Dominic Farrell, head of one of the vassal
families to the Kildare Irish mafia family, has become a good friend of mine.
Less than a year ago, if the two of us were fighting, it would have most likely
been in the street instead of a ring, and there’d have probably been knives
involved, possibly guns, not boxing gloves.
Because back then, the Kildares were our enemies, and we were headed
toward an all-out, blood-in-the-streets, nuclear level war with them. Then my
older brother Ares married Neve Kildare, joining the families, creating a
united front and burying the hostilities.
I’d always known vaguely somewhere in the back of my head that Sean was
a top-notch fighter. Then, when we accidentally crossed paths one night at
the underground fights I sometimes go to, we hit it off.
I’m pretty good, but Christ. That dude is phenomenal. Honest to God, there’s
a solid chance he could go pro. And from time to time, like last night, I
convince him to put me through my paces in a ring. This typically results in
me getting my ass served to me. But it’s also a great way to learn and get
better.
So, no, I didn’t sleep at my place in Brooklyn last night, because I was so
knocked to shit after ten rounds with that motherfucker that I crashed on the
couch of his Lower East Side apartment.
Okay…there might have been a couple or twelve shots of whiskey last night
too, since Sean insists on embodying every single stereotype of a hard-
drinking, tough-fighting Irishman. Yeah, in fact Callie’s right: I am rocking a
small hangover to accompany the full-body ache of getting the absolute shit
knocked out of me last night. Fun combination. Not.
Callie sighs loudly and glances at her watch again. “Ares did say ten, right?
It’s nine fifty-eight. If he’s not here in two, I’m—”
As if on cue, the door to the conference room flies open, and the rest of our
family crashes in like a wave of chaos, shattering the silence. Ya-ya walks in
first, her eyes wide and bright as she clasps her hands together, drinking in
the view of Lower Manhattan through the wall of windows. It’s our
grandmother’s first time seeing the Thermopylae Acquisitions offices
completely finished, and even though I’m exhausted, sore, and hungover, I
grin at the pride and joy on her face.
Behind him, Ares strides in last, like an emperor storming into his war room.
I can’t help but grin.
Ares was never supposed to be king. And not so long ago, he wasn’t, just like
he wasn’t the oldest Drakos sibling. Back then, it was our older brother,
Atlas, who reigned over our family empire, after murdering our father.
Atlas was the oldest, but also the cruelest. Years older than all of us, he
always felt more like a mean uncle than a brother. And the particular irony of
it being Atlas who killed our equally unlovable father is that it was Atlas who
was always our dad’s favorite. The one he poured the most of his cruelty,
malice, and pride into.
Ares was smart, though. He took the strength from our brutal upbringing, and
left the cruelty and the wickedness on the table. My younger brother Kratos is
the strong, silent one. Then there’s our youngest brother, Deimos, who’s
currently running the European side of our empire in London and is every
inch the God of Terror he’s named after. Calliope, or Callie, the baby of the
family, well… She’s her own force of nature, which is why we get along so
well.
And then there’s me. The wild card. The unhinged one. The God of the
Underworld himself.
Ares pauses near the head of the table, arching a stern brow at Callie and me.
“Thanks for dressing up,” he mutters, eyeing Callie’s flip-flops, cutoff jean
shorts and hoodie, and my black jeans, motorcycle boots and white t-shirt.
“I mean, it’s a business meeting at our new financial firm, Callie,” he sighs.
“It’s sort of implied.”
“How did you guys not know to dress up?” Kratos grunts, glancing down at
his sharp dark blue suit, custom tailored to his large frame.
Ares sighs and shakes his head before taking his seat at the head of the table.
Kratos and our grandmother sit across from Callie and I, and Ares leans
forward to push a button on the speaker in front of him. After a few rings, the
line picks up.
“Loud and clear,” Deimos’ unmistakably gravely tone rasps through the
phone. “Hi, Ya-ya.”
“Well, we’re all here,” I sigh, quickly jutting my arm out to snatch Callie’s
iced coffee out of her hands. I take another heavy pull, grimacing before I
give it back. “Should we start this thing?”
“One sec,” Ares glances at his watch. “We’re just waiting for—”
Fuck.
I mean, of course she’s here. She’s our family’s legal counsel, and a partner
at Crown and Black, the firm we use for most of our legitimate business legal
needs. But even still, the second Elsa Guin strides into the room, my brow
furrows deeply.
Honestly, I don’t even know how that started. It’s not like we ever clashed
over something big and important. It’s just…her. Everything about her gets
under my fucking skin. The fact that she’s a fucking ice queen with a stick up
her ass the size of the Chrysler Building. Those conservative, drab, gray skirt
suits she’s always wearing, with her ice-queen white-blonde hair—hair that
makes her look like a long-lost Targaryen sister on Game of Thrones—
scraped back in a severe bun or, on the days she’s feeling wild, just a
ponytail.
There are some people you meet in life who are just your fucking opposite.
And that’s Elsa for me. She’s the decaf chamomile tea to my shot of whiskey.
The electric scooter to my gas-guzzling American muscle car.
She’s a bloodhound for anything fun, and an expert at extinguishing that fun
with her schoolteacher-in-charge-of-detention vibe.
But, all of that aside, there’s another thing about Elsa that pisses me off
beyond anything else. And try as I might, I can’t fucking change a thing
about it.
It’s complete and utter bullshit. Something totally fucked with my inner
wiring. A critical flaw in my programming. But whatever it is, despite being
a thorn in my side and the coldest ice queen in the western world…Elsa’s
fucking hot.
Not in an overt way. I mean the woman is like a robot who’s been
programmed to find zero humor in anything and speak like a goddamn legal
briefing all the time. She wears thick-rimmed glasses, and I honestly doubt
she owns a single piece of clothing that isn’t office attire in various tones of
gray or black.
She isn’t hot in the way the women I’m usually attracted to are—leggy model
types with vapid thoughts, nothing but slutty clubwear in their closets, and
mouths far better suited for sucking my cock than engaging in anything even
remotely approaching intelligent conversation.
No, Elsa’s hot in that sexy librarian you want to gag with a paperback while
you fuck the shit out of her against the shelves of the Classic Lit section kind
of way.
I think it’s her accent, too. There’s something about that posh British tone
that makes me want to hear her say filthy things with it.
When she walks in, her eyes catch my glare for just half a second. But it’s
enough for her nose to wrinkle, a small sneer curling her lips before she
almost instinctively rolls her eyes and pulls her attention away from me.
Her boss, or at least one of her bosses, Alistair Black, strides in behind her. I
don’t really know Alistair at all. But I do know that despite being a champion
of the law, there’s a darkness in him. Call it game recognizing game, or one
individual with fucked-up tastes recognizing another. But that blond-haired,
blue-eyed charm of his doesn’t fool me. Plus, rumor has it that he’s a member
of the very club I plan on going to tonight. The kind of club deviants like me
go to.
Alistair shuts the conference room door before he shakes Ares’ hand.
Alistair flashes the room one of his charming million-dollar smiles that seems
like it was custom made to win over juries and judges before he unbuttons his
jacket and takes a seat at the table.
Elsa, meanwhile, looks around the room like a teacher surveying the
detention room she has to monitor. The facade only cracks a little when she
gives my sister—who she’s been helping with the legal aspects of re-opening
The Banshee—a quick flash of a smile before taking her seat.
Ares clears his throat. “Since we’re discussing the acquisition today, I’ve
asked Mr. Black and Ms. Guin to sit in on this meeting.”
I arch a brow, perking up when he says it. “The acquisition” is something
we’ve been idly talking about for months. But if we’re all here to talk about
it, with legal representation, I get the feeling it’s become more than a hopeful
idea.
“As we’ve all talked about before, Serj Mirzoyan, the head of certain
Albanian”…he glances at Elsa and Alistair, clearing his throat…“enterprises
in New York…”
It’s a cute way of avoiding the word “mafia” in front of the lawyers. Even if
they’re both painfully aware of what our family does and who we are,
plausible deniability is always a good thing.
“…wants out. He’s done with running things, and he wants to leave with a fat
paycheck in his hands. And we’re very well-positioned to be the ones who
give him that fat paycheck, in exchange for full control of all his business
assets.”
Deimos clears his throat at the other end of the phone line. “Remind me again
why he’s snubbing his own kids on this? Why wouldn’t one of them just take
over if he’s ready to retire?”
Ares shakes his head. “He’s not snubbing them. They’ll be compensated well
for—”
“Because Melik and Vanya Mirzoyan were raised like trust fund brats, not
mafia heirs,” I break in. “And Serj is smart enough to understand that a flat
payout is a much better inheritance for them than an empire they’ll almost
assuredly burn to the ground or sell off piecemeal for cocaine and shopping
money.”
“We’re not worried about his motives, though?” I frown. “I mean, Serj has
plenty of reasons to try and fuck us over on this.”
My older brother nods. “You’re referring to the bad blood from years ago?”
“Yeah, I’m referring to the fact that our father, may-he-burn-in-Hell, put a
bullet through Serj’s father. Call me old-fashioned, but I feel like that’s not
the best foundation for a—”
“Mr. Mirzoyan has been quite open about the…relationship between your
two families.”
My jaw grinds as I slide my eyes from Ares to stab my gaze lethally into
Elsa.
“Because she’s been working on this deal since the get-go and has done
significant research into the financials Serj provided, that’s why,” he mutters,
with a look that says, “knock it the fuck off.”
“Yes, there’s history between our family and his,” Ares nods. “But I’m
confident after speaking with Serj that the past is truly in the past. He had
about as much love for his father as we all did for ours. And he wants this
deal. He’s hungry for it.”
I frown, folding my arms over my chest. “Okay, so what’s the damage going
to be?”
“A hundred and fifty mil. That’s for the whole thing. Every asset, every
business Serj controls.”
Kratos whistles. Deimos mutters a curse in Greek over the line that draws a
sharp look from our grandmother as she goes to swat the speakerphone.
“It’s a lot, I know.” Ares steeples his hands on the conference table in front of
him, and he glances across to Elsa and Alistair. “Could you please give us a
minute?”
The two lawyers nod, standing and closing their legal pads before making an
exit.
My brain refuses to acknowledge how good Elsa’s ass looks in gray tweed,
even if my eyes insist on following it out the door.
Our grandmother smiles, drumming her fingertips on the tabletop. She may
be small and frail, but the list of people who’ve rued the day they
underestimated Dimitra Drakos is lengthy. The woman is as sharp as a blade,
with all the destructive power of a hurricane when she puts her mind to it.
“One hundred and fifty is not a small number,” she says in a slow, measured
tone. “But, it will get us more than even Serj is aware of.”
Despite her age, Dimitra sits on no less than four of these boards. First,
because she genuinely does want to better New York, and make sure the city
keeps affordable housing available, especially for immigrants, given that
she’s one, too.
But second, because her insider knowledge picked up at the various meetings
of these boards helps funnel a shitload of construction jobs to Drakos-owned
companies.
“It’s of interest,” Dimitra smiles, “because in nine months the city is going to
approve rezoning that whole block for mixed-use housing and retail.”
Holy shit, that’s huge. Serj’s parking garage—a dismal, brutalist thing from
the eighties—takes up almost two thirds of the block.
She shrugs, a smug grin on her face. “The rezoning discussion is under a
strict gag order. All closed-door meetings, all participants buttoned up with
NDAs. Not a soul knows it’s happening. Not even Serj Mirzoyan.”
The eyebrows of everyone around the table begin to raise as the implications
of all this settle in.
“Actually, the best part,” Ares growls hungrily, “is that given comparable
properties in the area, we’re looking at a potential two-billion-dollar profit
from this.”
Ya-ya shakes her head. “No. None of the property owners will find out about
it for another six months, to avoid a price war or any issues with landlords
trying to push out existing tenants on the adjacent properties.”
Ares’ brow furrows. “There’s something else, though. Up until two weeks
ago, Serj was extremely keen on our deal happening. Since then, he seems to
have cooled a little. My guess was that he was courting another offer, and it
seems I was right.”
He pulls an envelope from of his jacket and slips out a number of black and
white photos, which he tosses across the table for all of us to see.
Shit.
I scowl at the pictures of the older, graying, greasy-haired Serj shaking hands
outside of the Russian Tea Room with the young, tall, dark-haired, heavily
tattooed, and very handsome head of the Reznikov Bratva’s New York City
operations.
He’s quite possibly one of the most powerful men in the entire city, despite
only being something like twenty-four years old.
“Guess we know who Serj’s other interested buyer is,” Deimos mutters.
Ares nods. “Yeah. And knowing Gavan, there’s almost no way he doesn’t
know about that rezoning, or he’d have even less interest in dealing with Serj
than we do. The Russians and the Albanians had a turf dispute less than a
year ago, and Serj’s men capped one of Gavan’s top avtoritets, whom I
gather was also a close friend of his.”
“And now he and Serj are doing business…?” I scowl. “Yeah, that wouldn’t
be happening unless Tsarenko knew for a fact he was screwing Serj over
bigtime.”
“You still go to that…” He clears his throat, shooting a quick glance Ya-ya’s
way before turning back to me. “That club of yours, yeah?”
“Good. Clear your schedule for the night. I want to run something by you
later.” I nod, and he presses a button on the table in front of him. “Jenna, can
you send Ms. Guin and Mr. Black back in, please?”
“You’re still good for the sit-down tonight with Taylor and Dante Sartorre?”
My ears prick up at the name. Besides being a major player in the New York
City underworld, not to mention a majority owner of Club Venom, Dante
Sartorre is also a cousin of Luca Carveli, a west coast big time player with,
shall we say, unfortunate connections to our family.
“Connections”, as in, our father made a business deal with him years ago in
exchange for Callie’s hand in marriage when she turns twenty-one. Which
is…coming up.
It’s something we’ll definitely have to deal with at some point. Probably
sooner rather than later.
So, yeah, damn right my brows fly up when I hear Elsa and her boss mention
Dante’s name. I pull out my phone and pretend to be doing something on it
with my back to them.
“Absolutely,” Elsa replies in that prim, proper, frosty ice-queen with a stick
up her ass way of hers.
“Good. Thanks. Taylor’s a stone-cold killer lawyer, but it’s always good to
have back-up. Especially with a guy like Sartorre.”
I swivel my chair around lazily, frowning as Elsa packs her laptop and stacks
of legal pads into her giant shoulder-strapped briefcase.
Her head snaps up, those flinty hazel eyes of hers narrowing suspiciously,
like they always do around me, as if she’s confident I’m perpetually
scheming something.
“I was sitting eight feet away from you and my ears work.” My brow
furrows. “Sartorre is a dangerous man, you know.”
Elsa shrugs. “Your family is equally dangerous, and I’m just fine.”
She sighs heavily, like she’s waiting for me to drop the punchline of some
joke I’ve set her up for. When it doesn’t come, she frowns.
“Just looking out for my favorite ice queen. If you get whacked, how else am
I going to cool off a room in the summer?”
Elsa’s pink lips curl into a sarcastic sneer. “Hades, it’s perpetually astounding
to me how a man can reach the age of thirty without ever having evolved past
children’s playground insults.”
“I’m twenty-nine.”
“Something amusing?”
“Yes. It’s amusing how immune you think you are to my charms.”
She rolls her eyes, shouldering the strap of her bag. “I am, in fact, immune to
you, Hades. To every dimension of you—both of them, actually. And I’m so
sorry if no woman has had the heart to tell you this before, but sophomoric
humor and trust fund cockiness do not, in fact, make you charming or
attractive.”
“I think there are several woman probably within spitting distance of this
very building who would disagree.”
Her nose wrinkles in disgust. “Precisely. Hades, let me put it this way,” she
snaps coldly. “I wouldn’t sleep with you if you were the last man on earth
and the continuation of the human race depended on it happening.”
“It just seems like you’ve put a lot of thought into the mechanics of, and
situations involving, fucking me.”
Her pale face turns crimson in half a second, her eyes widening as her mouth
forms a little “O” shape.
“Just know that I could make you come harder than you’ve ever come in your
life with just one finger.”
She stares at me, face bright red and fuming as I grin at her.
“Which finger would that be?” She smirks as she brings a hand up. “This
one?”
Elsa’s middle finger stands stiffly up in the air, a tight grin on her lips, before
she whirls and storms out the door.
4
HADES
Present:
I STARTLE as consciousness rips me from the haze I was just swimming in.
Groaning, I stretch under the sheet, feeling the sort of ache in my muscles
that can only come from a marathon fuck. My lips curl hungrily as I feel my
cock thickening heavily against my thigh.
With a savage grind of my jaw, I roll over to spread her legs and sink myself
back into the outrageously pretty, eager, dripping, tight little pussy that’s
been draining my balls all evening. But I stop short with a start when I realize
the bed next to me is empty.
My eyes open blearily as I fully wake up. Scowling, I scan the room. But it’s
empty. And the door to the ensuite bathroom is open, with the lights off.
Shit.
I sit up, glaring at her side of the bed. My hand lands on the sheets, and I
frown.
I don’t chase women. Even a woman who arguably just reset the bar about a
mile higher in terms of my own definition of good sex.
I allow a smile to creep over my jaw as I drop back to the pillows, shoving
my fingers through my hair.
Fuck, that was good. Really good. Like, “four marathon rounds and I still
want more” good.
And I never want more from a woman, even if the sex is fantastic. I just
don’t. I don’t chase. I don’t call later, or make plans for the next time.
I fuck, I leave.
There’s always another woman, in another club, with another hopeful smile
and twinkle in her eye, like she’s going to be the one who fixes me. That
she’ll be the one to keep me wanting more.
But there’s no fixing me. I’ll never want more. Not from the same woman. A
repeat means attachment, and I don’t do that either.
I used to think there was something wrong with me because of this inability
to be intimate in any real capacity outside the physical mechanics of sex. But
as I’ve gotten older, I’ve realized that it’s not that the ability to feel or
experience emotional intimacy is broken inside of me.
It’s that it’s completely walled off, behind barriers a mile thick and three
miles high. Maybe part of it—or probably a lot of it—is what happened to me
when I was young. But that’s only a piece of it. Somewhere deep down, I
know I’ve always been like this.
For a while, when I first became friendly with Cillian Kildare after my
brother married Cillian’s niece, I thought maybe I’d found someone else
who’s the same kind of different as me. Cillian, after all, is a legit, certifiable
psychopath. Or at least, he’s firmly on the scale somewhere. But it turns out
he’s not entirely devoid of emotions or unable to have personal relationships.
Not just because we’re friends—at least as much “friends” as you can be with
a man like Cillian. But because he’s married to Una now.
They may the darkest, gothiest prom king and queen couple I’ve ever met.
And I’m sure their intimate life involves drinking each other’s blood, or
pulling the wings off bats or butterflies or some weird shit like that.
Whatever the reason, here I am: approaching thirty without ever having had a
meaningful or intimate relationship with a woman that’s lasted longer than
eight hours.
I glance back to the spot my little kitten recently vacated and replay
flashbacks of the evening in my mind, starting with the way she grabbed me
and just fucking kissed me.
I’ve had woman throw themselves at me more times than I could ever count.
But never like that. The other times, it’s felt almost pathetic—a desperate
attempt for me to “pick them”. As if they’re “special”, or in any way different
than any of the faceless, disposable women who came before them, or the
ones who’ll come after.
But the little kitten who kissed me tonight wasn’t throwing herself at me. She
wasn’t begging me to pick her.
Four times.
I grin.
I stand, stretching again before I pad across the room to the bar cart. I pour
myself a much-needed whiskey, knock it back, then pour one more and bring
it back to the bed with me. I sit on the edge and glance at my watch sitting on
the bedside table.
My mind flashes back to the little kitten kissing me, but then I rewind a little
bit further, to the girl I was talking to before Kitten came along.
The girl I actually came to Venom tonight to see. Not because I had the
tiniest interest in fucking her, much less talking to her. But because Ares
asked me to, and family is one thing I will always do anything for.
Even seducing Leo Stavrin’s utterly brain-dead girlfriend.
It’s like this: Leo is Gavan Tsarenko’s top captain. Until a few months, he
was working lower down the totem pole over in the UK, where Gavan’s co-
head of the Reznikov Bratva, Konstantin Reznikov, runs things. But when the
Russians’ war with the Albanians got Gavan’s top captain Artyom killed, his
position needed to be filled. And it would seem Leo has filled the position
well.
That, obviously, puts him close to Gavan. It also probably goes without
saying that it makes him intimately familiar with whatever plans Gavan is
cooking up when it comes to making a play for Serj’s empire.
But there’s something else about Leo that few people know: Leo’s a cuckold.
I don’t mean that as an insult. That’s legitimately his thing. Leo’s fetish is for
his girlfriend Anya—the aforementioned brain-dead brunette with the
ridiculously fake tits—to go out and get fucked by random dudes, and then
come home and tell him all about it.
There may or may not be a part of that kink that involves, uh, cleaning her
afterward with his tongue. And, hey, I’m not gonna kink shame anyone, even
weaselly little shit-bags like Leo Stavrin, but fucking ew.
In any case, that was what Ares wanted to “run past me” after our meeting
earlier. Leo’s gotten Anya a membership to Venom to help facilitate her
random fucks. So the plan was for me to make an appearance myself, find
her, seduce her, and get her talking about anything business-related she may
have heard from Leo.
That plan went a little sideways when she fucking recognized me, of course.
Anya might be dumb…and she is…but I doubt even she’d be dumb enough
to start talking about her boyfriend’s Bratva business with someone who’s
very obviously a member of a competing family.
And then, of course, Kitten grabbed me and kissed me, and the plan went
from merely full of holes to sunk to the bottom of the sea right next to the
fucking Titanic in about a nanosecond.
Not that I have any regrets. It was honestly a shit plan to begin with, and I get
more than a little pissed when Ares wants to weaponize how I am with
women for business purposes.
I have plans involving Leo too. But mine involve spying on him using the
state-of-the-art surveillance equipment I’ve got stashed in an apartment
across the street from the restaurant he uses as an office. Not banging his girl.
And fuck, I should have been there twenty-five minutes ago now.
Quickly, I knock back the rest of my drink and get dressed. I glance once
back at the bed before I roll my eyes and resist the urge to slap myself.
H ALF AN HOUR LATER , I’m pulling the hood of my sweatshirt down low over
my face as I slip in the back door of the apartment building. I’ve rented the
studio on the fourth floor through a shell company, just to be safe. I’m not
stupid. But you can’t be too careful.
As much pride as I have in my own family, and as much as I’d love to tell
Gavan and his crew to go fuck themselves, that would be epically unwise.
We made ourselves much stronger when we partnered our family with the
Kildares. But the Reznikov Bratva is a fucking powerhouse. Not to mention
allies with about four other equally huge Bratva families.
So the name of the game right now is “make sure you don’t get fucking
caught”.
I can do that.
In the empty rented studio, I leave the lights off as I move to the window. I
crack the blinds just enough to be able to see out, looking at the front of
Leo’s restaurant, The Pearl of the Black Sea: famous—or should I say
infamous—for its overpriced caviar, cheap swill vodka poured into bottles
with premium labels, and the fact that Leo Stavrin does most of his business
out of a third floor, front-facing office.
An office I currently have two cameras with telephoto lenses and a military-
grade targeted microphone aimed at.
I slip on the headphones, squinting through one of the cameras as I focus the
mic on the office windows across the street.
Shit.
All I’m hearing is garbled static. There’s a few hints of men’s voices, and
even a woman’s—Anya, probably. But I can’t hear shit. And the shades are
drawn, too.
Goddammit.
I pull away from the camera and peer through the blinds themselves. Fuck. I
glare venomously at the neon sign for the restaurant that hangs just outside
Leo’s office windows. Somewhere in the back of my mind I remember
reading something about the flickering wavelengths of neon throwing off
targeted microphones. That might or might not be bullshit, but either way, I
can’t hear a damn thing.
Fuck.
I try to get anything for a few more minutes before I throw in the towel and
admit defeat. This isn’t happening. Not tonight, at least.
I’m about to shut everything down and go home, when something catches my
eye outside. It’s a girl storming out the front door of the restaurant. My brow
furrows as I watch her, her back to me as she takes what looks like a shaky
breath and shoves her fingers through her long blonde hair.
And then suddenly, the light from the neon sign above her glints off the
bracelet on her wrist.
I go still. My face lowers to the viewfinder of the camera next to me, peering
at her now through the telephoto lens.
She’s wearing black heels with ornate golden bows on the toes. A backless,
sexy—but not too sexy—little black cocktail dress.
And even if her face is turned away, I can see the angry red welts—bite
marks—running up the side of her delicate neck.
Three of them.
Fuck. Me.
One similarity would be weird. The combination of all of them piled together
is too much to ignore. And the bite marks on her skin that I can still taste, and
the gold and white band that is obviously from Club Venom, move it from
weird coincidence to fact:
The girl I just spent four hours tangled in bed with in one of the private
rooms of Club Venom just walked out of Leo fucking Stavrin’s restaurant-
slash-office.
I don’t for one second believe that’s coincidence. She picked me, after all.
Her long, white-blonde hair swishes to the side. The neon sign glints in the
hazel flintiness of her eyes, and glistens off the soft pink pout of her lips.
Eyes that typically roll at whatever I say. Lips that almost always sneer when
they’re near me.
And that’s when it suddenly hits me like a Mack truck to the face.
The girl standing on the sidewalk outside Leo’s place, the girl from the club,
is goddamned Elsa Guin.
Fuck, I can still taste her on my tongue. I can still feel the velvety sweetness
of her cunt squeezing my cock as she erupted beneath me.
But forget trying to wrap my head around the Ice Queen herself fucking
anonymous men at Club Venom. I mean, I will figure that part out, even if it
means ripping it from her piece by fucking piece.
No, right now, I would very much like to know what the actual fuck Elsa
Guin is doing walking out of Leo motherfucking Stavrin’s office at one in the
morning, after screwing me all evening.
With a snarl rumbling on my lips, I whirl from the window and storm out of
studio apartment. I take the stairs two at a time, yanking my hood up as I
explode out the side door of the building.
…Just in time to watch Elsa slip into the back seat of an Uber and drive off.
My car is only a block away. If I run, I could make it. I could chase her. I
could—
The door to the restaurant opens, and suddenly Leo and four of his goons
come pouring out, looking angry as hell.
Shit.
I turn away, yanking the hood down over my face before I slip into the
shadows, watching the Uber carrying Elsa slip around a corner and disappear
into the night.
This isn’t over. Actually, this is the farthest fucking thing from over.
Because I’ve had a taste of the heat that lies buried deep inside the queen of
ice.
Wincing, I step out of the Uber I just took from Club Venom. It pulls away
from the curb after I shut the door, and I glance up at the garish neon sign
blaring “The Pearl of the Black Sea” above me.
He’s certainly not expecting me, especially unannounced. But this is where
Leo does business. And judging from the number of swarthy, gruff looking
men in suits with visible Bratva tattoos milling around the bar and lounge
area when I walk in, he’s here this evening.
I make my way up one of the staircases from the main dining room level to
the lounge and bar upstairs, grimacing with every step. I’d always imagined
that there might be at least some discomfort after doing what I was planning
on doing tonight for the first time. But I’d imagined it would only happen
once.
I also didn’t plan on the instant addiction. The inability to say no or to tap
out. The way he teased, manipulated, and played my body like a master. The
craving for more, more, more.
I also didn’t exactly plan on him being hung like a freaking horse.
I grimace again in discomfort as I take the last step up into the lounge area.
But even so, a flush creeps up my neck and a warm, sensual feeling pools in
my core. Sore or not, that was good.
I make my way through the mixed crowd—both regular New Yorkers and the
obvious Bratva-connected types—sipping vodka in the upstairs lounge. At
the far end, two burly men in suits and wearing earpieces guard the staircase
up to the third floor, where Leo holds court in his private office.
The teasing memories of earlier tonight fade as the reality of how I even got
to this point presses its foot down on the back of my neck.
I’d cut Leo out of my life before I was even eighteen. He’d certainly cut Nora
and me out of his, which I was more than fine with. And when I decided just
under a year ago to move us to New York, it felt like taking an even bigger
breath of fresh air. We’d be putting an entire ocean between us and him.
Leo has always worked for the Reznikov Bratva—first under Antin
Reznikov, when I was small. And then more recently after Antin died, under
Konstantin, Antin’s son.
I’ve kept tabs on Leo since I was eighteen and took over legal guardianship
of my sister. I wanted to know where he was, to make sure that wasn’t
anywhere near us. So I heard about it when he moved to New York right after
we did, to start working for Konstantin’s co-king of the Reznikov empire,
Gavan Tsarenko, the head of the organization’s presence in the US.
I told myself it was a coincidence. I told myself New York was a vast city,
and we could easily never cross paths.
Until Leo very purposefully crossed mine, two months ago, and immediately
sank his claws into me again.
I’d never be able to prove it in court. But I know damn well that he got that
particularly personal piece of information from a nurse at my OB-GYN’s
office. A nurse who suddenly had the money, at least according to her
ecstatic posts on social media, to quit her job and move with her boyfriend to
a lavish beach house in Nha Trang, Vietnam.
A nurse who very obviously sold my personal medical details to Leo. And
he’s been using that information to torment and threaten me for the last two
months.
Because in the fucked-up world of the mafia, and the Bratva, and all of that
shit, apparently that’s all a woman is: a tradable commodity whose value is
determined by whether or not she’s a virgin.
It’s not like I was ever “holding on to my virtue” or anything like that. Nor
am I at all religious, or a prude, or asexual. I mean, I have desires. I get
sexually turned on. I’ve just never slept with anyone.
At first, it was that I knew I was too young. Then, I was essentially Nora’s
mother, and who the hell has time to date or have a social life when you’re
raising a seven-year-old at the age of eighteen?
After that, there was always just something else to take up my time.
University, and then law school. And then absolutely throwing myself into
work. My job was my boyfriend. And the idea of a one-night stand, or any
kind of casual sex just…never appealed to me.
Three dates later, I was thoroughly creeped out and had zero interest in seeing
him again.
Because Hugo was one of those men—the kind of guy, like Leo, who viewed
virginity as some sort of commodity. Or worse, as a signal of “goodness”—as
opposed to “whorishness”, as Hugo so colorfully explained it to me on that
third and final date, after I’d finally told him I’d lost interest in him.
But Hugo didn’t really hear that, and didn’t want to hear the word “no”. He
got obsessive—not just with me as a human being, but with my “virginal
status”. It got so bad that I had to move to a new firm entirely. It even
escalated to the point where he was stalking our apartment, my new job, and
Nora at her fucking school.
I finally got a restraining order against him, and it all stopped. But after that, I
was officially done with dating. Not when there were men out there who
were only going to reduce me to some sort of virginity fetish.
No thanks.
And for a while, it didn’t even affect me at all. I’ve been too insanely busy
with work the last few years to have time to date anyway. Vibrators exist. So
does internet porn. And I have a vivid imagination.
But then two months ago, Leo entered the picture again to once again
leverage my lack of sexual experience into a tradable commodity.
The guards at the bottom of the staircase to the third floor glare at me,
moving closer together as one shakes his head and holds up a hand.
I smile a tight smile. “I’m sure Leo will want to know I’m here.”
The guy arches a brow, glancing at the other guard before shaking his head.
“No.”
Same as the other handful of times we’ve crossed paths, Pascha looks at me
like he’s mentally undressing me, which makes my stomach turn. It’s even
worse tonight, though. Usually, all he’s got to work with are drab gray or
black pant or skirt suits.
Tonight, I’m dressed like this. Which of course, only turns his usual leer into
an outright dangerous one.
“You look delicious,” he hisses, grinning that bony, creepy grin at me.
“And you look like a sex offender, as always. I’m here to see Leo.”
“The only little bitch I see here is you,” I smile sweetly at him.
“You can tell him yourself.” Pascha nods at the two burly guards before
grabbing my elbow and yanking me angrily after him as he storms up the
stairs. I grit my teeth, still wincing with every step but relishing the triumph
I’m going to feel once I tell Leo that his little plan just went up in smoke.
Upstairs, we march down a tacky gilded hallway until we get to a heavy door.
The guards step aside as Pascha blows past them and through it, with me in
tow.
There are six other men in the room—some drinking at the bar along one
wall, a couple of others cleaning handguns on a coffee table between two
leather couches. Leo himself looks up from his large, ornate desk when we
enter, first with a curious, then amused expression on his face.
“Ahh, there she is,” he purrs in his thick Russian accent, clearly dulled by
vodka by the late hour.
“Hello, Leo.”
I laugh coldly. “I can promise you, that’s not going to happen, Leo.”
My dad ignores the dig. “Can I assume you’ve come here tonight to finally
follow through with your family responsibilities?”
I can only stare at him. “Family responsibilities?” I hiss. “Where the hell
were your ‘family responsibilities’? Like, ever?”
Leo glares back at me. “You were provided for as a child. You had food,
clothes, a roof over your head…”
“If you don’t wish to acknowledge what she was…” he shrugs. “Well, I can’t
force you.”
“The money for your needs came from me, moya doch’.” He sighs, raising a
silver-rimmed crystal tumbler and sipping what must be vodka over ice. “But
enough. It is in the past. Now, we have the future to look toward, and what it
means for you and our family.”
I laugh coldly again. “Our family? I have my family and you have yours.”
He smiles, making a tsking sound with his teeth as he shakes his head.
“Blood is blood, moya doch’. And you have something this family can use to
advance itself.”
“I know you’ve never been with a man,” he growls quietly. “This is good,
very good. Because a man like Melik Mirzoyan can appreciate a bride who’s
never bled for another man.”
This time, I do actually have to choke back the vomit rising in my throat.
Because there it is: the reason for all of this. The reason I went out tonight to
do what I did, to rid myself of my freaking virginity, so that he couldn’t hold
it over my head anymore.
My father wants to marry me off like some sort of prize cow to the prince of
the Albanian Mafia, Melik Mirzoyan, to secure a deal with Melik’s father
Serj. Such a deal would allow the Reznikov Bratva to buy out Serj’s empire.
But apparently Melik is one of those sacks of shit that is only interested in a
virgin bride.
Fuck. That.
Slowly, as the silence grows in the room, I start to smile—wider and wider,
until Leo’s brow furrows.
It’s now or never. I didn’t intend to be this dramatic with it, nor did I
anticipate there being half a dozen other men in the room, including the ultra-
creepy Pascha. But screw it, why not.
“What phrasing?”
A man like Melik Mirzoyan can appreciate a bride who’s never bled for
another man.
Without saying a word, I bend at the knees and reach down. Leo’s face
scrunches up in confusion as my hand slips up under the hem of my dress.
With a wince, I peel the cream-colored lace panties away from my still-tender
parts and pull them down my legs. Then I slip them over my heels, and
dangle them from one fingertip, smiling.
Then, before I can lose my nerve, I toss them right onto Leo’s desk.
His eyes drop and his face twists when he spots the dark red stain on them.
“What the fuck?!” he sputters, standing abruptly and backing away, as if I’ve
just tossed a bomb, or anthrax, on his desk. His eyes drag up to mine,
revulsion on his face. “What is this!? Are you on your fucking period or—”
The color rushes into his face, suffusing it with deep a purply-red as his lips
curl viciously.
“No.”
I just smile. “Oops. So much for the purity pledge for poor widdle Melik and
his fragile male ego.”
“You do not get to talk to me like that,” I snap. “Actually, you don’t get to
talk to me at all.” I shake my head, keeping my head high as I glare right into
his face. “This is over. Don’t ever come near me again.”
Then, with a show of cool confidence I don’t feel in the slightest, I turn and
stride out of the room, my chin up and shoulders straight.
I keep up the façade until I get outside. Then the air rushes out of my lungs
with a wrenching sound as I look up and shove my fingers through my hair.
It’s done.
It’s over.
The Uber I ordered on my way back down through the restaurant pulls up to
the curb. Grinning, I hop in. And then we’re off into the night.
N ORA ’ S fast asleep on the couch when I get home. Netflix still thinks she’s
binging The Witcher, so I quietly turn off a shirtless, monster-slaying Henry
Cavill, cover my sister with a blanket, make sure the blinds are drawn so the
first light won’t wake her, and leave her to sleep.
Part of me feels a little guilty for using him. But not that guilty. This is Hades
we’re talking about, after all. To him, I’m sure I was just one more random
girl on one more random night. It’s a thought that sits sourly in my brain
much more than it should. But I shove the sourness down.
And it’s with endless replays of all the ways he made me explode rushing
through my head, like a powerful drug, that I slowly sink to sleep.
6
HADES
I know she must have heard Anya gushing about “knowing me” at Club
Venom. I might have been wearing a mask, but between Anya using my
fucking name, and my recognizable tattoos—that you can see even when I’m
clothed—Elsa absolutely knew who I was.
She didn’t just kiss me because she thought I was some random guy.
I’m just trying to figure out what the point was in fucking me as it pertains to
her working with Leo.
Unfortunately, my plan for burgling her office gets scuttled when I pull up
outside the Midtown office building that houses Crown and Black. The bank
branch on the ground floor is apparently getting wired up for a new and
improved security system, which means there’s about twenty cops milling
around at every entrance and stairwell.
I mean, the Drakos family has “friends” in the police force. But twenty cops
turning a blind eye to me waltzing into a law office at two in the morning?
Pushing it.
It’s Saturday. I’m sure that Crown and Black has their paralegals and interns
pulling weekend hours, like every other big NYC firm. But it’s still early, and
the top three floors that house Crown and Black are empty. Just in case,
though, I come in quietly through a maintenance elevator, making sure I
avoid the security cameras until I get to Elsa’s office.
It’s locked, of course. But I’ve been picking locks since I was ten, and hers
isn’t exactly Fort Knox.
I just know her well enough to know the sounds she makes when she comes.
To know how sweet her pussy tastes. To know she went fucking wild when I
pulled her hair, and spanked her ass.
To know she almost came when I fed her my cum off my fingers.
The locked file cabinet opens just as easily as the door to her office. I comb
through it, looking for anything Reznikov or Stavrin-related. Anything to do
with Mirzoyan too, for that matter. But all I find is some flimsy shit
pertaining to some building permits for Gavan Tsarenko, who I know also
employs Taylor Crown herself for his own legal needs.
I scowl as I close the cabinet with nothing to show for my efforts. It’s the
same disappointing result with the files in her desk drawer, and the only
things I find in the closet are four librarian-esque skirt suits in varying shades
of gray, gray and gray, and a yoga mat.
Fuck.
I’m making a quick poke around the attached private bathroom, complete
with shower facilities, when I hear the office door rattling and then opening.
Shit.
I duck back behind the half-closed bathroom door, peering through the door
jamb.
It’s fucking her. Elsa’s panting, her chest rising and falling under the sports
bra she’s wearing underneath an unzipped hooded running top, together with
leggings and jogging shoes.
She’s even got her hair up in its typical severe ponytail. I watch as she turns
to frown at the doorknob, because I left it unlocked, and she’s probably
wondering how she missed locking it the day before.
But she shakes it off, turning to walk over to her desk. I shift to the side to try
and get a better view through the cracked door.
Goddammit.
Instantly, I hear her sharp intake of breath.
Shit.
“Hang on.” I stick my hands out of the bathroom doorway first. “Don’t blow
my fucking brains out, okay?”
Slowly I poke my head around the corner, where my eyes are instantly met
by a furious and spooked Elsa. She’s not holding a gun, but she is pointing a
can of pepper spray at me.
She squints at me. “How about I use it on you anyway, and you can file a
complaint about false advertising afterward?”
“Nah, that’s okay.” My eyes drag from her cold, hazel gaze, to the nozzle of
the pepper spray, still aimed at me. “Could you not point that at me?”
“Could you kindly explain what the fuck you’re doing in my office?”
I also don’t want to tell her I know about her double-crossing. Not yet. Not
until I’ve backed her into a corner she’ll never get out of.
I step fully out of the bathroom, my hands still raised. “I was just dropping
some paperwork off for Thermopylae Acquisitions.”
She turns, and for the first time, my eyes land on the three marks on her neck.
Something savage growls inside of me—something hungry for more at the
sight of my mark on her.
She’s obviously slapped concealer over them. But either from her run or
because I bit and sucked too hard for them to be hidden away, they’re there
for all the world to see.
“Right.”
Slowly, I lower my hands. Thankfully, Elsa also lowers her pepper spray. She
also stiffens and very quickly zips her running top back up over the sports bra
—high enough to cover her neck wounds.
She wrinkles her nose. “Well, if you’re done breaking and entering—”
The haughty “over it” tone is the typical one she always uses when she talks
to me. But she’s overdoing it.
Overcompensating.
I can see it in the flush on her cheeks that’s from more than just her run. I can
see it in the way she refuses to meet my eyes, as if she knows that if she does
so, I’ll see right into her, and reveal all of her secrets.
Little does she know that the one secret she’s most desperately trying to hide
from me isn’t a goddamn secret at all.
I could tell her right here and now. Hell, I could turn on the psycho inside of
me, get all dangerous and threatening, and yank the truth about her
involvement with the Russian out of her right now.
But I could also wait. I could also slowly box her in and let her build her own
cage. If I let her know I know about her double-crossing now, it’s all over. I
might get something out of her, but what I get is what I get.
If, however, I don’t let her know I’m onto her, she might just show me even
more. If she thinks I have no idea she’s working with Leo, and furthermore
have no idea it was her I was fucking into a whimpering, shaking, subby little
mess last night, she won’t guess that I’m watching her every move.
I grin. Her usual vitriol is…shaky right now. She’s trying too hard to sell it.
She rolls her eyes. “My night was fine, thank you.”
I chuckle. “Jesus Christ, dial down the suspicions. I’m just trying to be nice.”
“Not reall—”
“Yeah.” I shrug, turning to stroll past her shelves of legal books, running my
fingertip over the spines. “Fucked her brains out, too.”
Elsa is silent behind me. I smirk, still idly examining her books.
Her face turns crimson and her jaw drops open and then snaps shut again, as
if we’re in the climax of Edgar Allan Poe’s Telltale Heart and she’s terrified
that the truth will just tumble out.
“What do you think, Elsa?” I smile broadly. She shivers as I slowly close the
distance between us, until I’m standing right in front of her. “Was it three
times, or four?”
She swallows uneasily, her face burning hotter and hotter, like it might
combust under the pressure.
“I…how the hell should I know?” she mumbles, her hands clenched at her
sides.
The energy between us hums. She swallows again, her lower lip quivering
before her teeth firmly latch into it.
“I really think you should leave. I have work to do,” she finally blurts.
I just smile, letting my eyes pierce into hers before she yanks her gaze away
with a shudder. It’s only then that I release her from my gaze.
“Hades.”
Halfway through the door, I turn with a smirk on my lips and a raised brow.
H E . Knows.
Three full, long minutes after Hades leaves, I’m still standing in the middle of
my office.
I flinch, shuddering and wrenching myself back into the present, blinking as I
stare vacantly at the closed door of my office.
He doesn’t know. There’s no damn way he does. Obviously, all he said was
“enjoy your weekend”. And me, being freaked out that he was standing in
front of me less than twelve hours after claiming every single inch of my
body and redefining my definition of orgasm, simply misheard.
I outright invented that last “kitten”, although I have no freaking idea what he
could have said that sounded like kitten.
I shiver again before I march across the room and lock the door again.
Not that that stopped him before. I know damn well I locked this when I left
work yesterday afternoon, and I also know the cleaners don’t forget to lock
up when they’re done.
No. He doesn’t know. That wasn’t him rubbing it in my face. That was just
Hades being, you know, Hades. Cocky, obnoxious, arrogant. A bully. A
lunatic. A shameless manwhore.
He doesn’t know, and that’s the end of that. It has to be, or I’m just going to
drown in this thing until I fall apart. I’ll just file it away in that lock-box in
my head—the place I store and hide anything that trips me up, or pulls me
away from my planned trajectory.
Which, obviously, isn’t healthy, as all four of the therapists I’ve seen since I
was seventeen have told me, repeatedly. But it is what it is. It’s how I deal.
How I keep breathing, both for me, and for Nora. I take all the things that
drag me down or lie across the path in front of me, and shove them deep into
the very back of a closet I can then forget about.
That’s how I’ve managed to get where I am. And, not to toot my own horn
too hard, but you don’t get to be where I am, at the age of just twenty-six,
without some seriously unhealthy mental health habits. But, therapy will still
exist later, once I’ve hit my stride and can finally take a breath. Once I’ve
created an iron-clad life for Nora and myself I can fix the parts of myself that
got broken along the way.
I flush deeply, shaking those thoughts from my head for the last time. Then I
do what I always do to bury or hide away things I don’t want to deal with: I
open my laptop.
And I work.
For Nora. For me. For the future. Because I will not be our mother, chained
to a life that grinds her under its heel and to a man who controls her, hurts
her, and takes away everything that makes her herself.
I’ve been running from that potential future since I was fourteen. And
nothing, not even the God of Hell himself, is going to stop me now.
“S TOP .”
I gasp, almost spilling my coffee. I spin toward the voice behind me.
Fumi—my colleague who has the office next to mine, and who’s also my
only real friend in New York—makes a face as she leans against the door
frame. It’s not uncommon for her to launch directly into the middle of a
conversation, whether you’re in a scheduled meeting or in neighboring
bathroom stalls.
But normally it doesn’t give me a heart attack like a jump scare moment in a
horror movie.
I blame the cocky and gorgeous menace that broke into my office two days
ago.
“Sorry,” Fumi winces, tucking a strand of jet-black hair behind her ear. “I
just had something really important to ask you.”
I nod as sink into my office chair and gingerly take a sip of my steaming hot
coffee.
She steps into my office and drops into one of the two chairs across the desk
from me, nodding slowly as she taps her fingertips together meditatively.
My brows knit. “Is this about the Chesterman case? I talked to their family
counsel on Friday afternoon. He seemed to think they’d be amenable to a—”
“Okay…”
Her grin widens. “How was your weekend?”
I lift an easy shoulder. “Fine, mostly. I just stayed in and caught up on work.
Made sure Nora didn’t get into any trouble. Dinner in. You know, the usual.”
“Uh-huh, uh-huh,” she nods slowly, her dark eyes locked on mine.
“What hickeys?”
Fumi rolls her eyes. “Really? You’re a professional lawyer and you’re
actually this bad at lying?”
“But…what?”
“But you have to fucking tell me all the details afterward, so I can live
vicariously through your sexcapades!”
I can feel the redness engulfing my face. But I still force a snorted laugh and
a roll of my eyes.
She groans. “Elsa! We have to present a united front on this! Sisters helping
sisters! I crave gory details. Now go! And don’t you dare tell me you’ve
forgotten the pact.”
I grin widely. “The pact” is something that came out of a very long night of
drinking after work one day, not long after I joined Crown and Black. Both of
us were commiserating about being married to our jobs, and how we didn’t
understand how anyone working the hours we worked could possibly find the
time to date, even casually.
It was comforting enough to hear that I wasn’t the only one who felt that
way. But coming from someone like her, it made me feel even more seen.
Because with her Japanese father and Korean-Italian mother, Fumi is
freaking gorgeous. Like, outrageously, knocking it out of the park, winning-
the-genetic-lottery beautiful.
So if even she wasn’t even finding dates, it really was the job. Not my
neurotic nature. Or at least, not entirely that.
Our drunken pact was a two-parter: one, if we were both still completely and
utterly married to Crown and Black by the age of thirty, we’d marry each
other. Not because of any latent gay tendencies. But solely to make sure
neither of us died alone only to be eaten by the cat, or something tragic like
that.
The other part of the pact was that one of us would tell the other if and when
she somehow, by some miracle, managed to go on a date or, better yet, get
laid.
Fumi, as close a friend as she is, does not know that I am—or was—a twenty-
six-year-old virgin, though. Because who the hell wants to have that
conversation?
I laugh and wave a dismissive hand. “It’s seriously not what you think. I saw
some TikTok or something with this girl wearing one, and thought I’d try
rocking the scarf look. That’s it.”
She’s up before I can even register it, lunging around my desk and yanking
the scarf off before I can stop her.
“Hey—!”
I know this. And same. But Fumi means dance clubs, not the kinky and
dangerous sex club variety.
“Exactly. And as a perfect example of why we do, this guy was all over me.”
She scowls. “Like, didn’t take no for an answer ? Because I’ll fucking stab
him.” She shrugs. “Legally speaking.”
I flush hotly.
Yes. Yes, there are. On my tits, my nipples, my hips, probably down my back,
on my inner thighs, at my bikini line. Vicious ones, at that.
“Did you…”
I roll my eyes. “I was just having some drinks and blowing off some steam.
That was it. We didn’t even trade names.”
She groans appreciatively. “God, that sounds hot. Lie to me. Tell me you
banged him in the bathroom, or at least got fingered under the bar. Give me
something for the wank-bank, for fuck’s sakes.”
“Ms. Guin.”
I jolt at the sound of my boss’ voice in my doorway. Fumi turns the color of
skim milk, going absolutely stock-still as Gabriel Black’s deep, rough
baritone rumbles into my office.
“A moment?”
“Of course, Mr. Black.”
Taylor and I are on a first-name basis, at her insistence. Alistair is the same
way, so long as we’re not with clients.
Even if I’m at least fifty percent sure he did just hear her say she needed dick.
Fumi stands, clearing her throat and taking a breath before she turns to smile
brightly and professionally at our boss.
“Ms. Yamaguchi,” he growls. She darts past him and out the door.
When we’re alone, Gabriel closes my office door and then leans against it.
It’s funny. Up till last week, even given how cool I am with Taylor and
Alistair, Gabriel Black has always thrown me off a little. I mean he throws
everyone off to varying degrees, ranging from “a little” to “pee-your-pants”,
which is kind of his evil superpower. It’s also what makes him a viciously
ruthless and successful lawyer.
But now, in the three days since I last saw him, I’ve come face to face with a
more ferocious darkness.
And I’m realizing that it’s a little tough to be intimidated by anyone, even
Gabriel Black, after you’ve fucked the God of Hell.
Four times.
“Great, actually,” I beam. “I spoke to the family’s personal counsel last week,
and I think they’ll be amenable to a settlement. Nobody on their side wants to
see the inside of a courtroom.”
He nods slowly. “Good. Keep me up to date, but feel free to proceed as you
see fit.”
“There is.” He clears his throat. “Ms. Crown and I just got out of a meeting
with Gavan Tsarenko.”
A shiver runs down my spine. I have no illusions that this has to do with
anything other than my father, Gavan’s top captain.
“Right now.”
My pulse grows weak.
“Not at all.”
He nods, getting ready to go. “Good. Oh, and you’re still fine for tonight?”
I resist the urge to grimace. Tonight, I’m meeting a potential new Crown and
Black client for a pitch dinner. On the one hand, I’m honored that the name
partners have the faith in me to do this solo.
Obviously, this begs the somewhat troubling question of whether I’m going
out tonight to pitch Howard on Crown and Black, or to audition to be his next
girlfriend.
But of course, I’m not mentioning my concerns to Gabriel. Instead, I just nod
and smile. “Of course.”
“Excellent. Oh, and don’t overthink the Gavan thing. He’s about to dump a
lot more work on us—much more than Taylor can reasonably be expected to
handle herself. I think he just wants to meet a few of our top people who’ll be
taking on some of that work. It’s all above-board. Don’t let the rumors spook
you.”
He nods and raps his knuckles against the door behind him. Then he’s gone.
8
ELSA
Which is exactly when the door swings open with barely a knock, and Gavan
himself billows in like a black cloud.
At twenty-four, Gavan Tsarenko is even younger than I am. Tall and built,
the man looks every inch the Bratva king that he is: black hair, steely
gunmetal gray eyes, heavily tattooed. Even in his impeccable, tailored suits,
the lines of ink creep out of his cuffs and snake across the backs of his hands,
as well as up his neck to his jaw.
And then all the effort I’m putting into maintaining a calm appearance
vanishes when Leo walks in behind him, followed by the consummately-
creepy Pascha.
My father just glares at me, half a snarl on his lips. Pascha shuts my office
door and very deliberately leans against it while mentally undressing me.
Puke.
“Ms. Guin,” Gavan purrs quietly. “I don’t believe we’ve ever officially been
introduced.”
He crosses the room with the air of a man who owns every single one he
enters. He shakes my hand firmly across the desk, then clears his throat.
“May I sit?”
Gavan undoes his jacket button and settles his muscled frame into one of the
two chairs facing my desk. When I remain standing, he arches a brow.
His lips curl at the corners. Angry? Amused? I can’t quite say.
“Let’s skip the part where we pretend we don’t understand all the convoluted
histories and relationships in this room,” he begins. “It’s a waste of time and
we’re both busy people. As I understand it, your father—”
Leo and Pascha glare daggers at me. Gavan just inclines his head gracefully.
“Yes. Well, Leo, then, wished to aid my organization in an important
business acquisition, by offering your hand in marriage to Serj Mirzoyan’s
son, Melik. Do I have that correct so far?”
I nod stiffly.
“Apparently so.”
“I’m not going to discuss my body, my personal choices, or my sex life with
you or your men, Mr. Tsarenko.”
Gavan shakes his head. “You misunderstand. That isn’t why I’m here, Ms.
Guin.”
“Then why are you here?” I mutter in a tone that I fully realize is
approaching dangerous considering the man I’m using it on. “Because I know
it’s not about ‘meeting the other lawyers in our firm who will be handling
your legal needs’, as you told my boss.”
He smirks. “Perceptive.”
“Thank you.”
Gavan clears his throat. “I don’t honestly give a shit who you choose to sleep
with, Ms. Guin. And while I can appreciate my captain’s zealousness,” he
turns to arch a brow at a glowering Leo, “in trying to secure this deal for me
through whatever means he saw fit, no one’s forcing anyone to marry anyone
else.”
I turn to sneer at Leo. He looks like he’s got a lot to say. But he just glances
at Gavan before leaning against the wall with his arms folded over his chest
and remains silent, glaring at me.
“Now, as I understand it, the Drakos family is also interested in doing
business with Serj Mirzoyan?”
I raise one brow, dipping my chin and keeping pointedly silent. Gavan grins.
“Right, of course. Attorney client privilege and all that. Even so…” He leans
back in the chair, drumming his fingers on the arm rest as his gray eyes stab
into mine. “Some deals, like Mr. Mirzoyan’s, are too important to leave up to
whichever way the wind might blow at a negotiating table.”
“Then I suggest you retain great counsel and bring a large check to that
negotiating table, Mr. Tsarenko. I’m afraid I can’t divulge any information
about other clients I may or may not be representing.”
“Brass tacks, Ms. Guin. What would it take for you to divulge information on
these hypothetical clients of yours?”
“Gavan is fine.”
“Mr. Tsarenko,” I say again. “Are you implying that you’d like to bribe me
into breaking my attorney client privilege in order to give you sensitive
information about a business rival of yours?”
“Oh, I’m not implying anything, Ms. Guin,” he smiles. “I’m flat out asking
you.”
I bristle, shaking my head. “I’m afraid that’s not going to happen. And I’m
not comfortable with the tenor of this conversation.”
Gavan says nothing. His eyes don’t leave mine.
His brow arches, and the corners of his lips curl slightly.
“You’re sure? Because once an offer of a gift in return for information goes
away, it generally doesn’t come back.”
“Mr. Tsarenko, I am flat out telling you I will not be taking money in
exchange for breaking my professional code of ethics, not to mention the
law.”
Gavan takes a deep breath. He doesn’t make a single move to stand. His
fingers drum the arm rest over and over, jacking my anxiety through the roof
until it feels like I’m going to explode.
“Mr. Tsarenko—”
“Excuse me?”
“If you don’t want to accept the carrot, Ms. Guin,” he says in his deep,
growly tone, “then we’ll have no choice but to use the stick.”
A shiver ripples down my spine. “Mr. Tsarenko, all due respect. But for
professional and legal reasons, given that I am not your attorney, I’m afraid I
have to ask you to leave—”
“Oh, for fuck’s sake!” Leo finally snaps, surging from the wall and slamming
his knuckles on the front edge of my desk and leaning menacingly across it.
“Do what he’s fucking telling you to do, or so fucking help me God, there’ll
be another Guin sister—one who presumably hasn’t whored herself out yet—
offered to Melik to secure this deal.”
I go livid.
“Leo.”
There’s nothing sharp or loud in Gavan’s voice. And yet it holds a power that
money can’t buy, and instantly chills the room. He turns to glare at my father.
Leo scowls.
Gavan lets his gaze rest on Leo for another few seconds before he pulls his
eyes back to me. I’m wondering if I’m supposed to thank him or not, when he
answers the unasked question.
“Don’t.”
I frown. “Don’t—?”
“Thank me. Your sister might be off the playing field, but I still expect to get
what I want, Ms. Guin.”
“Look, Mr. Tsarenko—”
“You’ve gone to great lengths to hide your connection to your father, Elsa.
Taking your mother’s maiden name, distancing yourself and your sister from
him. Working your way through school by yourself.”
“And I can respect that. But I can—and will—have zero problem with
exposing all of those secrets you so very much want to keep hidden, if it will
get me what I want.”
It takes me a few seconds to realize the gravity of what he’s just said. And
when it does hit me, I go white and stiff.
“I—”
“You’re one of this firm’s fastest-rising stars, if not the fastest. A non-equity
partner at twenty-six, and already on the path to equity partnership? That’s
very impressive.”
“I wonder,” Gavan sighs, absently turning to look out the windows past me,
drumming his fingers on the armrest of his chair, “I wonder how they’d feel
if they knew who your father was?”
My legs shake and threaten to buckle. My face pales. Leo and Pascha both
smirk. Gavan’s face remains eerily neutral.
He doesn’t answer. He simply smiles, stands, and walks back toward the
door. When he reaches it, he turns, pushing his fingers through his dark hair
as his gunmetal eyes land on me.
“I will get what I want, Ms. Guin. Take that how you will.”
He nods, turns, and strides out the door. Leo sneers at me, and without a
word, follows his boss out. Pascha lingers one more second, his eyes sliding
over me one last time as he licks his lips thoughtfully. Then he slithers out
too.
What the fuck. It’s nine-thirty a.m., and I’m officially being blackmailed by
the Bratva to spy on the Greek Mafia.
I give it another few seconds, letting the flavor spread over my tongue a little
longer before I finally swallow. I glance at Sean, nodding.
His grin widens as he clinks his glass of whiskey to mine. “What can I say,
man? That’s my girl.”
“Remind me why you haven’t been smart enough to wife her yet?”
He makes a face as he takes a sip. “I dunno, man. I mean I love her and shit,
but it’s a big step, you know? And we’re not even thirty yet. Who knows
what the future holds?”
I roll my eyes. “Dude, as your friend, I’m going to level with you.”
“Sean, you’re a six-foot-four ginger giant with generally shitty people skills
and table manners, a moderate drinking problem, and a below average dick.”
“I’m just saying, man…the ‘future’? For you? Maya is way out of your
league and I don’t know how she agreed to go out with you in the first place.
Don’t be a fucking moron. Put a ring on that yesterday.”
He grins.
“How’s the steak, boys?”
Sean sputters into his whiskey as we both turn to see the chef herself standing
behind us, her hair slick against her temples under the white chef’s hat, a
flush on her face from the chaos and heat of the kitchen.
“Maya,” I shake my head, waving my fork at the plate in front of me. “This is
fucking….dayum.”
“Hades is about to make a mess of his underwear over your steak. And I’m
not sure how I’m supposed to feel about that,” Sean grins at his girlfriend,
leaning in to kiss her cheek.
She laughs. “Well, try not to make a scene, Hades. But if you and the steak
need to get a room, the Standard is right down the street. No questions
asked.”
She chuckles as she gives me a quick hug, then pulls back. “All right, well,
try not to jizz on any of the guests. I need to get back in there.”
She kisses him once more before she dashes back into the kitchen.
“Seriously. Like yesterday, you dumb Irish fuck,” I mutter under my breath.
“I’ll shove you into traffic myself if you don’t marry her.”
He laughs, draining his glass before motioning to the bartender for another.
“Yeah yeah yeah. I know. Look, anyway, I wanted to ask your opinion on
something else, too.”
“Shoot.”
“Yeah.”
“Yeah I’ve heard of him. Have you heard of this guy Michael Jordan who
used to play some basketball?”
Sean snickers. “Well, he wants to work with me. What do you think—”
“I think if you have to ask me another dumb-ass question like ‘should I marry
the best woman I’ve ever and will ever meet’ or ‘should I work with the most
famous boxing promotor in the world who will make my career’, I’m going
to have you fucking committed. Jesus fucking Christ, dipshit. You call him
right the fuck—”
Elsa, who is looking stunning in a dark gray—of course, but here it works—
sleeveless dinner gown, her hair swept up.
Something vicious and monstrous snarls and claws inside of me. A red mist I
don’t quite understand, that I haven’t met before, creeps around the corners
of my vision as my eyes land on the two of them: Elsa, and the fucking guy
she’s out to dinner with.
The guy I want to, for whatever insane reason, break in fucking half with my
bare hands right now.
He looks old enough to be her fucking dad, for fuck’s sake. And he’s got
“schmarmy moneyed douchebag” written all over him. I could overlook the
cocksucker grin he flashes at the whole place as if everyone should stand and
applaud him for simply existing. I could ignore the overly-bronzed tan from
whatever island he just came back from, and the comical combover to hide
his baldness.
Suddenly, I want to kill him. I want to rip that fucking hand away from her,
remove it and the arm its attached to from his body, and beat him to death
with it while she watches.
Sean is saying something to me. I have no idea what. I can’t look away from
watching Elsa and this fucking dude walk across the restaurant and into one
of the private, glass-walled dining rooms behind me, where they sit across
from each other with smiles on their faces.
Why the fuck should I or do I care who Elsa goes out to dinner with?
Because I fucked her? I’ve fucked more women than I can remember. And
I’ve never once given a single shit about them the second it’s over.
I come, I…well, come, and I leave. And I give zero fucks afterward.
So why can’t I pull my eyes and my gaze away from the two of them?
I blink, finally managing to tear my gaze from where Elsa is smiling and
chatting away happily with the walking dildo. When I turn back to him, Sean
is giving me a confused look.
He smirks. “Really.”
“Yeah, really.”
He frowns, peering past me. “Well, someone should tell her she can’t blow
her date in the restaurant.”
Goddammit.
Sean chuckles as I whip my gaze back to him. Elsa and fuck-face are just
sitting at the table like regular people, having a conversation.
“See, this is why I always beat your ass in the ring, brother,” Sean laughs.
“You’re way too easy to fuck with emotionally.”
“You beat me in the ring because you’re a giant ginger monster with a tiny
cock.”
I stand. And before I know what I’m doing, I’m marching across the dining
room, as if I’m going to war.
“Hades!” Sean calls after me. But I ignore him.
I ignore everything.
Everything except for the fact that some fucking guy thinks he can just take
Elsa out to dinner. Talk to her. Look at her. Fucking touch her.
He’s dead fucking wrong. And he’s about to learn that the hard way.
10
HADES
But when she does, her flinty hazel eyes narrow to slits.
“So, what are we drinking tonight?” I smile brightly at the two of them.
Howard McFuck-Face looks confused. Elsa, meanwhile, looks like she wants
something heavy to fall through the ceiling onto me and only me.
Howard frowns when I pluck his glass from the table and drain it in one gulp.
“Mmm. Tasty. Very….wine-flavored.”
His brow furrows. “I’m sorry, exactly who the hell are—”
“Kennedy Rockefeller—”
“This is Hades Drakos, Mr. Kenmore,” Elsa interrupts tersely, looking pale.
“And Mr. Kenmore,” she hisses, glaring at me, “is a very important
gentleman who’s considering Crown and Black for his legal needs.”
“Huh. No shit.”
Howard frowns. Elsa groans, pinching the bridge of her nose as she turns
back to him.
“I am so sorry, Mr. Kenmore. Hades’ family also works with Crown and
Black.”
“Yes, well, sadly, Hades sufferers from…” she clears her throat politely.
“Well, the family does what they can, of course, but when he doesn’t take his
meds…”
Howard nods. “Ahh, I see.” He turns to me. “Son, is there perhaps a car I
could call to take you—”
Elsa’s eyes just about pop out of her head. Howard frowns.
“Excuse—”
“I said get. The. Fuck. Out. You. Old. Fuck. Before I drag your ass out by
that ridiculous combover.”
His face goes livid. “Young man, do you have any goddamn idea who I am?”
“Not really, to be honest, and I don’t care,” I growl, making him pale as I leer
into his face like a maniac. “But maybe I could tell you about my family.”
When his face turns a shade of white, I can see he’s finally connected the
dots.
“Whatever you’re thinking, you’re right,” I mutter. “Now, I’m here tonight to
tell you that unfortunately, there isn’t space for you on Crown and Black’s
client roster. They’re all full. No room at the inn. So, again, fuck off.”
Elsa looks like she’s going to throw up. Howard has that look I’ve seen on a
hundred other people—a mix of wanting to hit me, but fully understanding
how horribly it would end for them if they did.
“I believe I will be leaving after all,” he hisses. “And then calling Gabriel and
Alistair Black, along with Taylor Crown, and telling them in one fell swoop
exactly how badly you fucked up this potential deal.”
“I will be taking my business elsewhere, Ms. Guin. Perhaps when I call your
bosses, I’ll suggest that as fuckable as their pretty little blonde pretend lawyer
is, perhaps next time, they should send a professional—”
He gasps sharply, his words dying in his throat as his face turns pale, as if
someone’s holding a steak knife to his balls.
“I’m going to stop you right there, fuck-face,” I growl icily, leveling my
vicious gaze at him. “Before you say something you—or at the very least,
your balls—will regret. Now: are you listening?”
He makes a pathetic mewling noise as I press the tip a little harder against his
shriveled nuts through his trousers.
“Kenmore.”
“Here’s what you’re going to do, fuck-face. You’re going to get up, try not to
piss all over the restaurant’s floor, and go pay the bill. And you’re going to
tip like the rich fuck that you are. After that, you’re going to call whoever
you have to call at Crown and Black and tell them that unfortunately, you’re
happy with your current legal representation, but you were so blown away by
Ms. Guin’s acumen and professionalism that you’re going to be hiring Crown
and Black as accessory legal counsel. You’re going to promise them five
million a year in billable hours—”
Howard bleats again, turning a greenish white color as I ease the tip of my
blade a little closer against his manhood.
“Make that six. It’s now six million a year in billable hours. And you’re
going to be damn sure that you give all the credit to Ms. Guin for that. Now,
have I made myself abundantly clear?”
“I’m sure I don’t have to mention that should you fuck this up, or screw her
over in any way, I will be removing your balls from your body while you
sleep. And furthermore, since you’ve pissed me off, if and when it comes to
it, I’ll be using something more like a fork instead of a knife.”
He looks like he’s going to throw up. But he manages to nod as he whimpers
pathetically.
The second I pull the knife away from his nuts, Howard is gone. I watch in
amusement as he bolts across the restaurant, dumping a few hundred-dollar
bills at the host station before all but falling out the front door into the street.
I swallow back the groan. It’s that fucking posh, polished accent of hers.
Specifically, that posh, polished accent when it says completely unpolished
things. Like the word “fuck”, which apparently makes me instantly hard
whenever she says it.
I pour another splash of the wine into my glass and bring it to my lips as Elsa
stares at me like I’m a maniac.
“Yes?”
Her eyes bulge. “What the hell are you doing here?”
I fix her with a look. “Really?”
“Really what?”
“Do you really want to play the ‘why are you here’ game?”
“Okay, if you insist. I’ll go first. Why were you at Leo Stavrin’s restaurant on
Friday night?”
Her face pales. She swallows, her lips pressing together. Her hand tightens on
the stem of her wine glass so hard that I’m legitimately worried it’s going to
snap.
But slowly, like the goddamn pro that she is, she swallows it all back. Her
mouth twists into a grimace, and her eyes turn accusatory.
“I don’t have to answer a thing, you arrogant dickhead,” she mutters. “What I
do on my own time is none of your business.”
“Why do I feel I don’t have to mention that his boss, Gavan Tsarenko, is?”
She makes it almost all the way to the glass door out to the main dining room.
Almost.
“Do those other clients know that you enjoy putting on a cat mask, going to
kink clubs, and getting fucked like a bad girl?”
You can hear the record scratch on her life as she comes to a frozen stop. Her
entire body tenses and then convulses, and for a second, I’m worried that
she’s about to vomit. Her back to me, I watch her shudder, her hands
clenching and shaking at her sides.
“Do they?”
“You have a small mole just south of your left breast, on your ribcage.”
She flinches. Hesitantly, she half turns her face toward me, not meeting my
eyes.
“No, I don’t—”
“And a birthmark in the shape of two overlapping dots, like a Venn diagram,
on your inner thigh.”
She starts to shake. I watch her throat rise and fall heavily as she tries to
swallow the lump caught there. And when she turns to stare at me with wide,
horrified eyes and a face completely devoid of color, I almost feel bad.
Almost.
She opens her mouth, but nothing comes out before it slowly closes again,
dread dripping down her face.
Her voice is so small and frail. The usual haughty, bored, disdainful tone she
typically uses when speaking to me is gone.
On one hand, it’s almost disheartening. Because for all the way we needle
each other, I actually like her usual all-business, take-no-shit attitude.
Honestly, it’s a turn on.
That said, on the other hand, seeing her shrink a little bit, and watching her…
dare I say…submit to me is…
A huge one.
When she turns to eye me with a cold, terrified look, I grin wickedly and
waggle my eyebrows up and down. Instantly, heat floods her face.
I feign shock. “Don’t even think about what? Jesus, Elsa, where did your
brain go with that?”
“That you’re going to blackmail me,” she mumbles. “It’s not going to work.”
“Oh, I think it would definitely work. But also, who do you think I am?”
“A criminal psychopath?”
“Hades…” Elsa hugs herself, looking pale. “I…my career…If you tell them
about Venom…”
My brow knits. “Wait, exactly how repressed are you that you’re worried
about your bosses knowing that you had consensual sex?” I smile thinly. “I
really don’t think they give a shit—”
“What do you want? I mean for you to not tell them about seeing me at Leo
Stavrin’s place.”
There’s that small, broken tone again. Part of me wants to laugh. I mean, shit,
she’s a rockstar lawyer. She probably breaks this tone out all the time in court
to get little old ladies out of vehicular manslaughter charges because they
can’t see over the steering wheel anymore. I bet judges and juries eat it right
the fuck out of her hand.
But I’m generally pretty damn good at reading people. It’s one of my
superpowers. And when I look into Elsa’s eyes, I don’t see bullshit and
practiced lines and a rehearsed tone right now.
And instead of my brain going to dark places involving making her submit to
me—say, for instance, on her knees whimpering “yes daddy, please daddy”
with my cock in her mouth—I find myself inexplicably switching tracks.
Suddenly, I don’t want to use this against her. Rather, I want to save her from
whatever is scaring the hell out of her so much right now. And she’s right.
It’s obviously not the part about having been to Club Venom, and everything
that happened there. It’s not even me, though I’m pretty sure Elsa would like
nobody in the world to know she slept with me.
No, it’s Leo. Or possibly Gavan. That’s what’s scaring the hell out of her.
And when I see that fear on her face, I find myself wanting to protect her
from it.
I want to stand between her and whatever’s just shaken the strength right out
of her.
“Hades—”
Her phone rings from within her bag. She shoves a hand in to silence it,
swallowing as her eyes raise to mine.
“I just—”
Her phone rings again. This time, she pulls it out of her bag and peers at the
screen, frowning.
“I—hang on, this is my building super.” Her eyes raise to mine, as if seeking
permission. I just nod, and she answers the phone.
“Hi, George? What’s up—”
Her face goes white. Her hand flies to her mouth as it falls open, her eyes
wide and horrified.
“Oh my God! Hang on! George, can you—no, keep them out if they don’t
have a warrant! I’m getting in a cab right now!”
Forget how pale and terrified she looked before. Now, she looks like she’s
going to explode.
“Elsa—”
“I have to go.”
She spins and makes a run for it—crashing out of the private room and
fleeing across the dining room. I don’t really realize how quickly I’ve
followed her until I catch up with her right outside the front doors of the
restaurant.
Elsa’s madly trying to flag down a cab when I grab her arm.
“It’s fine!” she blurts, her eyes wild as she keeps waving a hand in the air. “I
—I have to get home. Now.”
“What—”
“Come on.”
She gasps as I grab her by the arm and the hip, hustling her down the street.
“Get off me!!” she yelps, twisting under my grip. “I need to get a cab—”
“Get in.”
“What?”
“I’m way faster than a cab, trust me. Now get in the damn car.”
11
ELSA
Not many people do. I keep my personal life personal. Especially after I got
passed over for a highly competitive job at a firm in London when they
learned I had a ten-year-old living with me. Not one person in that interview
room believed that she was a younger sister, and that there just weren’t any
parents around anymore. I could see the same look in their eyes that I used to
get when I’d take an even younger Nora to the playground.
When the age difference between you and your sister is as large as it is
between Nora and me, people don’t see a teenager with her baby sister.
They see someone they can silently judge while smiling benignly.
That particular firm, after fawning over me for three months, suddenly told
me that they didn’t think I was “the right fit” for their “culture”.
“Most of our junior partners work hard and then start families of their own,”
one of them told me.
I walked out before I could tell them all to go fuck themselves. That they
could try raising a child alone when they were still a teenager themselves
after their mother dies.
But there’s no judgement in Hades’ tone. And when I turn to look at him as
the lift rises, all I see is a genuine look of interest in his sharp, ice-blue eyes
before he turns to face the doors again.
It takes me a full two seconds to realize I’m still looking at him before I
manage to rip my gaze away.
Again, it would be so easy to write Hades off as some sort of trust fund brat
who’s only playing at being a gangster. He was born with more wealth that I
can even imagine. The Drakos family home on Central Park South is a
neoclassical mansion from the British countryside—as in it was literally a
mansion in England that Hades’ great-grandfather had moved, brick by brick,
and rebuilt on the roof of a forty-story building overlooking Central Park.
Hades has never wanted for anything. He’s never had to pull all-nighters for
days on end in order put food on the table while raising a kid sister and going
to university. He received an allowance from his trust fund while he fucked
and partied his way through Harvard.
He’s not good looking in the way a rich trust fund brat usually is. His is a
dangerous, lethal beauty. And it’s not just the viciously piercing blue eyes,
the dark brows and tanned skin, the tattoos and muscles, or the razor-sharp
jaw and cheekbones that give him this overall deadly attractiveness.
“She’s always lived with me.” The lift comes to a stop, and the doors slide
open. Hades starts to exit with me, but I stop, turning back to him with a
furrowed brow. “Look, I’m fine, you can go. Thanks for driving me,” I
mumble.
He nods, his eyes lancing into me in a way that sends a ripple of heat down
my spine.
See ya?
Seriously?
I groan, but when I walk around the corner and see the two police officers
standing outside my apartment door, my cringey interaction with Hades and
his sinful hotness melts away.
The two cops are here because a neighbor called to complain about the loud
music and the smell of pot smoke coming from my apartment.
They both nod politely and shake my hand before one of them—an officer
Gonzales, as it says on his badge—sighs.
“Look, we hate to bother you like this, miss, and we’d love to just drop it
now that you’ve arrived. But unfortunately, since we could smell the
marijuana from out here in the hall ourselves, and being that the other
oocupant is a minor, we need to file the paperwork.”
I grit my teeth.
Goddammit, Nora.
“Now, you can refuse us entry, of course. But we would like to speak to the
two young men in there as well.”
“There, uh, appear to be two other individuals in there with her. At least
that’s what it sounded like when we first knocked.”
Officer Gonzales gives me a sympathetic look, his lips twisted. “I’m sorry,
miss. We’re not trying to bust your balls. But while New York might be a
recreational legal state—”
“Yes, I’m aware. The legal age is twenty-one,” I mutter, finishing for him.
“And you smelled what you smelled.”
His eyes suddenly snap past me, and his whole demeanor changes. He
stiffens, as if a supervisor has just walked in.
I whirl, frowning when I see a grinning Hades striding over, his hand
extended.
Hades grins that smooth, charming grin of his that he uses when he’s trying
to get his way.
“Real good, Mr. Drakos,” the other cop grins. “Just made the varsity team.”
If officer Chuck grins any wider, I’m going to beg Hades to just give the man
an autograph before he pisses himself.
“Look, fellas, I think this is all just one big misunderstanding. Don’t you?”
He rolls his shoulders before his hand slides into his jacket pocket. It comes
out a second later holding a wad of cash.
I’m hyperventilating. Black spots dot my vision as I count the seconds before
these two cops drop Hades like a bag of bricks and haul him down to the
precinct for the very serious crime of attempting to bribe a police officer.
Except all that happens is Officer Gonzales turning to Chuck, and the two of
them just shrugging.
“Starvin’.”
Hades smiles and my jaw drops as he hands the stack of hundreds to Officer
Gonzales and then firmly shakes his hand.
“Enjoy, guys.”
The two cops barely even look at me as they legit tip their hats to Hades and
then saunter off around the corner. When I hear the elevator door close, I turn
to the psychopath standing next to me, aghast.
“I have plenty of friends. I just don’t have crooked cops at my beck and call.”
“Well, if you want your sister to be processed for possession and use, I can
call them back.”
I glare at him before I shove past him to angrily stick my key in the door.
Ignoring him, I push the door open. Instantly, I’m assaulted by the lingering
scent of pot and way, way too loud music. I storm down the hallway into the
main living room, and suddenly stop dead in my tracks as two boys all but
levitate off the couch with white faces.
“Where is she?”
“Uh—”
Their eyes suddenly shift past me and somehow get even wider.
It happens so fast, I can’t even take it in. Hades storms past me like a force of
nature, grabbing the two guys by the collars and yanking them off their feet
so hard they both fall to their knees.
“In her room!” one of them blurts, looking like he’s about to cry, or maybe
pee himself. Or both. “She’s in her room! We were just hanging out, Mr.
Drakos! I swear! Just a little smoke and some music! That’s all we—”
Without even blinking, Hades suddenly turns and literally drags them out
through the glass sliding door to the balcony off the living room.
“Hades…?”
I start to follow him, but then my face goes white as he yanks both boys up
and shoves them hard against the balcony railing, to the point that they’re
bent backward over it with their feet scrabbling to keep on the ground.
But he ignores me, his eyes two dangerous, lethal slits as he stares at the two
teenagers who clearly know him somehow.
“You’re both eighteen,” he rasps darkly as they choke back sobs and whip
their heads around to gape at the ground thirty stories beneath them. “And
Nora is fifteen, you little fucks,” Hades snarls. “From now on, you leave her
the fuck alone. You don’t come near her. You don’t come over to her fucking
house. And you do not give her drugs. Is that fucking clear?!”
The two guys nod so hard and with so much fear and panic in their eyes, I
almost feel sorry for them.
“Yes, sir, Mr. Drakos!” one of them bleats pathetically. “We won’t! We
swear!” The other boy swallows, the question obviously hanging on his lips.
“Uh, my dad—”
“Are you smart enough to understand what I’m telling you?” Hades spits
back.
“Then I don’t think either of your fathers needs to hear about this. If you ever
come near Nora again, though, believe me, that will change. Are we crystal
fucking clear, you little shits?”
Cue the painfully hard head nods again, and the choked apologies.
“Good.”
I’m still staring at the whole scene like it’s some sort of insane fever dream.
Hades hoists them back over the balcony to safety and keeps a hold of their
collars as he drags them back through my apartment before he shoves them
out the door and slams it shut.
He shrugs. “They’re eighteen, and they should know better. Also, both their
fathers work for my family.”
“Are you typically this much of an asshole when people do you fucking
favors?”
I’m about to tell him to pack up his crazy and get out when I hear Nora’s
voice.
“Hello?”
With a final glare at him, I pull my attention from Hades and march back to
the living room. I grab the remote for the stereo and click it, instantly
silencing the loud, awful rock music blaring through the speakers.
She’s silent.
“Nora, get out here.”
There’s a heavy sigh and a squeak from her bedroom door as it swings open.
A second later, my sister shuffles out of the hallway that leads to both of our
rooms in leggings and a hoodie, her dark hair down and framing her face and
her hazel eyes, which are currently clearly unimpressed with me.
“What?”
I arch a brow. “Really? You’re going to open with attitude? That’s seriously
how you’re going to play this?”
I stare at her. “Over-reacting? Nora, the police were called to our apartment,
and you were smoking weed! Are you fucking serious right now?!”
“It’s legal now, in case you missed the memo!” she barks back at me.
“You’re the lawyer, aren’t you?”
“Not if you’re fifteen years old it’s not! And those boys are way too old for
you!”
“Legally speaking, yes you are. And they are, legally speaking, adults.”
The dark, edged note in Hades’ voice startles even me. Nora just about jumps
out of her skin before her eyes whip past me to where he has just emerged
into the living room.
“Nora.” My brow furrows as I move toward her. “Given their ages and yours
—”
“Holy fuck, you’re serious.” She stares at me. “What do you think I am?
Yeah, Elsa, I blew them both for pot.” She rolls her eyes. “That’s a joke, by
the way. Just making sure you got it.”
“Honestly? I was thinking I just wanted to smoke some weed and listen to
some cool music! What, like you never let loose and partied when you were
my age?”
Fuck.
“Whatever.”
“My father was a little obsessed with Greek mythology. Don’t change the
subject. Hand over the pot.”
She sighs. “I don’t even have it. They came over with some, but all they
wanted to do was talk football and play shitty music. So I hung out in my
room and played my own stuff.” She sighs, glaring at me. “I didn’t even
smoke any. Happy?”
“Can’t wait.”
Nora turns and snags a stack of magazines off the coffee table before she
starts to head down the hall.
“What?”
“The bag of weed you just scooped up with those magazines. I mean, props
for trying. That was a nice move. But I feel like you’re not really the target
demographic for Legal Digest magazine.”
I blink, just now realizing what magazines Nora picked up. She glares at
Hades, her lips zipped before she marches over and dumps the stack back
onto the table, plucking out the little Ziploc bag of weed shoved between two
issues.
“Narc,” she mutters, handing it to Hades before she whirls and stomps down
the hall. I flinch when her door slams shut, then exhale slowly.
Trying not to think about the fact that less than an hour ago, this man looked
me in the eye and told me he knows.
Hades knows what happened at Club Venom. I can tell myself that he doesn’t
as much as I like, but all that’s going to do is make me look ridiculous.
“I need a drink,” I blurt, striding into the kitchen and grabbing a bottle of
vodka out of the freezer. “Do you want one?”
I’m scrupulously avoiding direct eye contact with him, as I have been ever
since the restaurant. But I catch the slight shrug of his broad shoulder out of
the corner of my eye.
“Sure.”
But somehow here I am: pouring two vodkas over ice, handing him one, and
walking outside to the balcony with Hades right behind me. I stare out at the
glittering lights of Chelsea and the west side of Manhattan as I take a slow
slug of my drink, my pulse still thudding from the heated exchange with my
sister.
And from what just spilled out that we’re not talking about, apparently.
“Oh, please, I’m sure your penthouse or wherever you live is much nicer.”
“Barely,” I mutter.
Hades licks the edge of the paper, seals it up, and then sticks the joint
between his lips. He flicks the Yankees branded lighter that was in the
baggie, torches the end, and inhales deeply.
“Hades—”
“Toke?”
“You do know it’s legal in New York now, right? Also its fucking weed, not
heroin.” He inhales again, his brow furrowing as he plucks the joint from his
lips with a sour look. “Ugh, shitty weed, though.”
“Depends. Can you tell me why the fuck you were at Club Venom?”
I’m so unprepared for the question that I actually flinch at his words. My face
heats, my throat tightening as I swallow nervously and try to stop myself
from shaking.
My lips curl into a sneer. “So, I was just a warm, available hole for you?”
“Don’t,” he growls, the playful, teasing smile gone from his lips in a
heartbeat as his icy blue eyes turn to slits. “You’re the one that kissed me,
remember? You’re the one that threw herself at me.”
“Has the lawyer in the room ever heard of sexual assault by deception?”
“That’s not deception, Hades,” I blurt. “And I don’t seem to remember you
asking me my name.”
“Yeah, funny how that doesn’t happen at anonymous sex clubs,” he snarls.
“You know, the kind where you wear fucking masks?!”
I swallow, my hand tightening around the rocks glass in my hand. Hades gets
up from the patio table, making my core clench as he looms over me with
those piercing blue eyes stabbing into my very soul.
“Why what, Hades? You can go fuck a stranger no problem at a place like
Venom because you’re a man? But I’m the bad guy when I do it, because I
have a fucking vagina?”
I roll my eyes. “Fine! I heard you talking and recognized your tattoos. So yes,
Hades. I knew who you were, okay!? And now you know who I am, or was,
or whatever. We’re even—”
“Not quite.”
It happens so fast I don’t even have time to gasp. His big hand comes up and
wraps around my throat just as his mouth drops to mine. And suddenly,
Hades is kissing me with all the aggressive force of a conquering army.
His lips bruise against mine. His tongue demands entrance, pushing into my
mouth and tasting my own. I shudder, and when the whimper hums in my
throat, I swear I can feel him smiling triumphantly through the kiss.
Half of me wants to shove him away and slap his goddamn face.
The other half wants him to dominate me and bring me to my knees again,
like he did at the club.
And the longer I kiss him, and the warmer my body gets as it sinfully and
traitorously melts against his rock-hard chest, the more that other half of me
is winning the battle.
The sound of Nora’s voice is like having ice water dumped over my head.
With a startled gasp, I yank my lips away from Hades and shove him back. I
stumble from him, panting, my eyes wide as my hand comes up to touch my
puffy, swollen lips.
“Elsa.”
Turning from the Greek god in front of me, I turn to see Nora padding into
the living room and glancing curiously at me through the open glass door to
the balcony.
Still trying to keep myself away from the swirling dark vortex of a man
standing less than two feet from me, who just kissed the absolute fuck out of
me.
Nora shrugs and walks into the kitchen fiddling with her phone as I turn back
to Hades.
To those eyes.
To those lips.
To that fierce look in his face that says he’s ready to devour me.
I almost choke on the last word as Hades surges to me, forcing me backward
until my back hits the glass wall next to the doorway into the living room. I
whimper despite myself as he melts against me, pinning me to the glass as his
lips brush the sensitive skin on my neck where my bruises—his bruises—
have just started to fade.
“Hades—”
I gasp sharply when his lips fasten over one of the fading marks, and his teeth
sink into my skin. Hard. So hard, in fact, that something heated flickers and
licks its way down my spine to pool between my thighs.
Then he’s gone. And I’m still slumped against the glass, trying to remember
how to speak or walk, when I hear the door to my apartment close behind
him.
12
HADES
“S O . W HO IS SHE ?”
I’m barely inside the lobby of the building my family’s home sits atop when I
hear Castle’s voice behind me.
Like Sean Farrell, Castle is another unexpected friend courtesy the Drakos-
Kildare partnership that came about when Ares married Neve. The one-time
Army Ranger, who was once bodyguard to Neve and her sister Eilish, is now
Cillian’s de facto number two. After Ares and Neve tied the knot, Castle and
I still bumped heads on more than one occasion. But in the last few months,
we’ve been getting along tolerably well.
I think realizing I wasn’t sniffing after Eilish Kildare helped settle whatever
problems there were between us. Castle’s fiercely protective of the two
women, who are like kid sisters to him.
Not that Eilish isn’t smoking hot, but she’s not my type. What can I say:
innocent and sweet is a turnoff for me.
Castle and I connect through boxing as well, same as Sean. But we’ve also
gotten friendlier simply by working together than I think either of us would
have expected. It’s nice.
When my brother married Neve, the whole point was to create a truce:
Drakos and Kildare setting all previous hostilities aside to present a united
front against any and all enemies. In terms of business, the original idea was
that each family would maintain their own empire independent of each other.
That’s still mostly the case, although some of our…less than legitimate
business interests have started overlapping.
As it turns out, Castle knows his way remarkably well around a gas can and
structure supports. After I discovered that, and furthermore after we realized
we were evenly-matched sparring partners, things have been pretty cool
between us.
“What? Who?”
“All good, I’m just fucking with you. Congrats on the launch of Thermopylae
Acquisitions by the way. How’s it feel, going legit?”
Yeah, we’re on top of a building overlooking Central Park South, and there
are private grounds.
“Try not to drool on the parquet floors, okay? Ya-ya will be pissed.”
Castle grins, shaking his head and running his fingers through his short
blonde hair. “Sorry. Gets me every time, this place. It’s fucking insane, man,
you know that?”
“Dimitra literally maintains a separate landline number exclusively for all the
real estate agents and brokers who call offering to cut off their own hands to
get the listing if we ever decide to sell. You gotta listen to the messages
sometime, it’s embarrassing. This one guy left a message once literally
offering to blow me, Ares, and Kratos. And the dude is straight and married.”
I chuckle as the two of us walk down one of the gilded hallways and out one
of the side doors leading to the grounds. It’s Sunday, which means family
dinner night. This has always been Ya-ya’s “thing”, and ever since the
merger of the families, she’s started including the Kildares as well. It’s
exactly what it sounds like: both families sit down together to eat, drink, and
laugh, with the only rule being no business at the table whatsoever.
White, creeping floral vines, twinkling garden lights, and polished wood
tables and chairs underneath a pergola draped with gauzy white curtains.
Hashtag: natural life. Hashtag: family. Hashtag: live laugh love. It’s like
dining in a fucking Pinterest board.
Yeah, you can still hear the hum of the city down below. But you also feel
removed from it. And if you completely lose yourself in the meal, and the
conversation, and family—or at least in a couple of strong drinks—you can
pretend you’re in Greece somewhere, eating under the same skies the
Spartans looked up at.
The staff is still setting the dining area up. Ya-ya stops supervising and
breaks away to come over and give me a big hug and a kiss on the cheek
when she spots us. Then she turns and reaches up on tiptoe to pat Castle on
the cheek, calling him her “Apollo”—a nickname she recently gave him,
given his height and blonde hair and…yeah…his good looks.
It’s seriously Greek mythology all the way down the line with this fucking
family, I swear.
Castle pats my shoulder and heads over to where Cillian and Una are chilling
with drinks in all their dark gothy glory. I’m about to grab myself one when
Kratos appears, handing me a beer.
“Mind reader,” I smirk, knocking my bottle to his and then taking a sip.
When my brother keeps eyeing me as he slowly works on his own beer, I
arch my brow.
“Something on your mind?”
“What the fuck were you doing at Elsa Guin’s apartment the other night?”
“What? I wasn’t.”
“You were. Donnie Petrakis’ kid Theo told his dad you scared the piss out of
him over there.”
Shit. I’d completely forgotten about threatening Theo Petrakis and Nick
Eliades with telling their dads about the weed.
“What a fucking moron. Donnie seriously better straighten the kid out if he
ever wants him to lead.” I shake my head, drinking my beer. “I mean who
fucking squeals on themselves—”
“So?”
“So, do you want to tell me why you were over there at ten o’clock at night?”
I shoot him a skeptical look. “Why do you think? Ares wants to head hunt her
away from Crown and Black to work exclusively for us on a full-time basis.”
“Yeah?” he grunts. “Well I’m pretty sure that you fucking her isn’t part of his
game plan to win her over.”
“Well, fuck you, too,” I mutter as Kratos chuckles along with her. “Let’s
break out your sordid personal life, Callie.”
She shrugs, taking a sip of her drink. “Me? I have no sordid personal life. But
don’t worry, Hades, yours is sordid enough for all of us!” She smacks me
affectionately on the arm.
“Yeah, keep talking shit and I’ll rat you out to Ares about that drink.” I nod at
the glass in my twenty-year-old sister’s hand.
She scowls. “The man is the head of a literal criminal empire, and I get
dinged for a having a fucking drink at a private family dinner? It’s such
bullshit.”
“Gotta draw the line somewhere,” I say with a grin. “It’s what separates us
from the animals. Right?” I glance at Kratos, who shakes his head with mock
sadness.
She rolls her eyes. “Me having a pomegranate martini is not going to make
society devolve into troops of monkeys.” As if to prove her point, she takes a
sip of the purplish cocktail in her hand before letting her eyes wander back to
me.
Ex-fucking-cuse me?
“I saw Eva Petrakis at lunch a few days ago. Apparently you almost made her
little brother Theo piss himself.”
I shrug. “I was just dropping off some paperwork. Theo was trying to get
Elsa’s little sister high. She’s only fifteen.”
Callie rolls her eyes. “Oh my god, how did you guys not know that?”
“Why, because she wouldn’t blow you within four minutes of meeting you at
some gross club, like the typical woman you go for?”
You’d be surprised…
Callie’s eyes widen frantically, and in one gulp she downs the rest of her
drink, trying not to choke as she turns to set the empty glass on a side table.
Kratos immediately starts to crack up. Our sister frowns in confusion before
she turns to glance over her shoulder.
T WENTY MINUTES LATER — AFTER Ares does finally arrive, with Neve on his
arm and Eilish in tow—we hear the familiar sound of Dimitra hitting the
small brass dinner bell on the sideboard, signifying that dinner is served.
We all take our seats. We laugh, we eat, we drink. And life is fucking good.
Or at least, as good as it gets for me, I guess.
And as much as I love my family and love these dinners, when I look around
the table, it’s just a giant reminder of how different I am.
I see Ares, sitting next to Neve and grinning as she pops an olive into his
mouth. I watch him turn and cradle her chin in his hand, kissing her deeply
before pulling away with another grin.
They used to be mortal enemies, and are now two of the most disgustingly in-
love people I’ve ever laid eyes on.
Kratos is single, but only because he chooses to be. Because he’s—as one of
the several therapists I’ve had over the years liked to say—“happy with
himself”. Whereas I waffle between hating myself and hating the rest of the
world.
Callie’s also alone, but then again, she’s young. Plus there’s the whole mess
with her arranged engagement to Luca Carveli to be sorted out. Eilish is
unattached, at least as far as I know. But she’s like Elsa in that she’s married
to her books, given that she’s just started at Columbia School of Business.
Castle’s the same way: utterly wedded to his job, and completely fine with
that.
I could—and do, often—tell myself that I’m single by choice. Because I’m a
wild man, and an agent of chaos, and love the thrill of the hunt and losing
myself in a different stranger every time I go out.
He rolls his eyes. “Neve and I are actually two separate people. We’re not
joined at the hip.”
I glance side-long at Callie. She glances at me. The both of us crack up. Ares
sighs.
My jaw tightens. I mean, yes and no. I’ve gone back to spy on his restaurant
from the studio apartment across the street a few times since the night I saw
Elsa walk out. But I haven’t picked up anything more of interest regarding
the Albanians. Maybe because they are—or at least Gavan is—smart enough
not to talk about major, hundred-million-dollar business acquisitions in
rooms full of windows facing other rooms full of windows.
That’s a major sticking point. I’ve done some more digging since that
morning when I broke into her office. Actually, I’ve been back to her office
twice since then—both times at night, so I could take my time. I even slipped
into her apartment just yesterday, while she was at work and Nora was at
school, to paw through her home office.
Nothing. There is nothing anywhere that connects her to Leo or Gavan. And
the more I think about it, the more I doubt she’s working for or with either of
them.
Which begs the question: what the actual fuck was she doing at The Pearl
that night after Club Venom?
“Nothing.” I shake my head. “If they’re talking about the Mirzoyan deal,
they’re not doing it at the restaurant.”
“Nope.”
I haven’t mentioned seeing Elsa outside Leo’s restaurant that night to anyone.
Not even anyone in my family, including Ares.
“All right then, on a separate note, you wanna tell me why you were at Elsa’s
apartment at ten o’clock the other night?”
“Well?”
“What paperwork?”
I sigh. “Just paperwork. Why the fuck is everyone so up my ass about this?”
“Because you’ve historically mixed with her about as well as oil does with
water, that’s why. What’s going on?”
Aside from the fact that I fucked her four times the other night, and then
kissed her again a few days ago? Not much.
But even that’s a lie. I want to be able to say there’s nothing between Elsa
and me. That she’s an honest-to-fuck ice-queen, a prude—well, most of the
time—and a serious pain in my fucking ass.
Except I’ve gotten a peek behind that ice-queen I. And I don’t just mean
because of our marathon, masked fuck-a-thon at Club Venom—okay, maybe
that’s a huge part of it. But more than that, ever since that night, when I’ve
crossed her path, I see a different Elsa than I used to see. And again, I don’t
just mean because now when I look at her, I imagine her naked, moaning, and
writhing on my cock.
Elsa’s a fucking partner at the most prestigious law firm in New York at the
age of twenty-freaking-six. That’s insane when you think about it. I’m unable
to fathom the work and the hours it must have taken to get there.
What the hell is “always” supposed to mean? Like, Elsa never left home
while going to school in England? Or that she did, and Nora came with her?
It occurs to me that I don’t know a damn thing about Elsa or her family.
But bottom line, for whatever reason, I get the head-down, all-business
strictness and the general frostiness now. I’m not sure it’s so much that Elsa’s
an ice-queen bitch, but rather the way she walls off the world, to give herself
space to even take a breath.
He eyes me with a look that says he’s not necessarily buying my shit, but that
he’s ready to leave it on the shelf for the moment. Then he clears his throat.
Mother. Fucker. I was wondering when he’d bring that shit up. So I play
dumb.
“About the acquisition of her dad’s Albanian Mafia empire? No, sorry.”
Ares frowns. “You know what I mean. Since you two dated in college.”
“I was trying to be polite. Fine, I’m asking you if you still keep in contact
with Vanya since fucking her in college.”
“Nor does it mean that I was regularly screwing her. For fuck’s sake, why
does this entire family have the absolute lowest opinion of me when it comes
to women?”
“Hades, I’m not trying to bust your balls. I just want to know if there’s a
connection there that we could leverage to put a little pressure on the deal.
I’ve shied away from using the fact that you and Vanya went to Harvard
together because it seemed like a cheap play that Serj would see as cheap.
But now that we’ve got Gavan Tsarenko and his infinitely deep pockets in the
mix, my gloves are coming off. Do you or do you not still have any contact
with Vanya Mirzoyan?”
Ares sucks on his teeth, turning away with a glare. “Well, suck it up,
buttercup, and swallow your fucking ego. I need you to see if you can get her
to like you again.”
“Not happening.”
“How about shoot for ‘not hating you’, and we’ll call it a start.” He sighs,
turning back to me. “Look, I know this is a beyond shitty ask, man. And I
apologize. I’m not trying to imply anything about your social life, trust me.
I’m just grasping at any fucking straw I can find to keep the Russians off our
asses and nail down this deal.”
I nod slowly. “All right, fuck. Fine. Yeah, I’ll send a ‘sorry you bit my dick
and I never called you again’ card.”
“I mean, as long you’re sure it’s not going to be a problem with your lawyer
girlfriend, Hades?” Callie giggles.
“Callie, c’mon. We talked about this. Not while you’re still twenty.”
She rolls her eyes. “Well, as much fun as it is to get scolded by your own
brother, Eilish and I have to take off. Bye, dorks. Don’t have too much fun
with Little Miss Jaws, Hades.”
I grin at her as she walks away. When she’s gone, Ares sighs and sinks into
the chair she just vacated. I shoot him a look.
“Dude, you gotta chill on the whole dad routine with Callie. She’s an adult—
a competent, well-rounded, intelligent one at that. Like, she’s not out there
pounding shots and getting behind the wheel of a car. It’s a responsible drink
at dinner with her family. Pick your battles, man.”
He nods, rubbing his chin. “I know, I know. You’re right. I just still think of
her as this little kid we have to protect from the world.”
“Well, we could start with cancelling that fucking deal with Luca Carveli.
She’s almost twenty-one, bro, and you know that fucking pig has it marked
on his goddamn calendar in red ink.”
Ares scowls. “I’m working on it. The problem is the deal Dad cut with him
was huge, and there’s interest baked into that contract. Frankly, breaking it
would mean paying Luca more money than we’ve got.” He sighs, turning to
glance at and give me a reassuring nod. “But don’t worry. That shit is not
going to happen. You’ve got my word on that.”
“One battle at a time, Hades,” Ares mutters. “Get in touch with Vanya, and
for fuck’s sake, please tell me you’re not actually screwing Elsa.”
I mean, it’s not a total lie. I am not currently, at this exact moment, literally
fucking Elsa and sinking my teeth into her neck as her pussy clenches and
comes all over my dick.
I grit my teeth as something dark, vicious, and hungry stirs deep inside of me
and begins to swell my cock.
Research. Yeah, that’s what it is. Reconnaissance on the man who was
supposed to be my dirty little sinful secret, who now seems to be
bulldozering his way into every facet of my life.
And my thoughts.
I’m not. In fact, the more times I replay it, the more turned on I get. The
faster my pulse beats. The more erotically detailed my nightly, dreaming
fantasies of him become.
I shiver as I return my focus to the screens in front of me. On them, there’s a
whole litany of articles and online gossip about Hades pulled up. There was a
piece in the Financial Times recently on the launch of Thermopylae
Acquisitions—with zero mention of the other business interests of the Drakos
family. Which I’m betting means they’re either friends with the guy who
wrote the piece, or they made him the proverbial offer he couldn’t refuse.
My eyes skim over it. A little ways past the part where it gushes about the
“strategic financial wisdom” of Ares Drakos, I find the bit about Hades. The
author, one Mark Duccet, goes on to paint Hades in an extraordinarily
favorable light as the resilient middle brother, learning to flex his wings
beyond his older brother’s shadow.
I roll my eyes at phrases like “confident and grounded”, or “the poised voice
of reason and the steady hand at the helm that helps guide King Ares’ ship.”
I minimize the article before I vomit. Then, I’m suddenly blushing as images
of Hades fill the screen—other windows I’ve had open behind the Financial
Times article.
And then, there are other pictures: candid, paparazzi shots of Hades, shirtless,
lounging on the bow of a yacht somewhere. Hades poolside at a luxury resort
—also shirtless. Hades crossing the finish line of the London Marathon.
There are more. Pictures of Hades outside the premiere of some dumb B-list
movie, arm-in-arm with the vapid-looking starlet-of-the-month whom he was
apparently “seeing” at the time.
I sigh, leaning back in my chair as my eyes scan the no less than ten pictures
of Hades up on my screens.
It’s not that I’m losing myself and getting all tangled up in the man that I
slept with and keep fantasizing about now.
It’s not.
That said, I’m in the middle of googling “Hades Drakos beach swimsuit”
when there’s a knock at my door, and it swings open before I can even
respond. Lunging forward while just about having a heart attack, I slam my
screens off before raising my eyes past them to the doorway.
He shuts the door behind him with a resounding click before he turns back to
me, a creepy smile on his pock-marked face.
Pascha ignores me, turning to stroll casually across my office, meandering his
way past shelves of legal texts toward the little couch area I’ve got set up in
the corner.
“Your father would like an update.”
I stand, walking around to the front of my desk and leaning against it with my
arms folded.
He swivels to leer at me, his eyes brazenly and nauseatingly sliding over my
body in that way he does, making me cringe.
He turns back, strolling casually over to the couches and bending over the
one faced away from us. He chuckles to himself and starts to poke around at
something, I can’t see what.
Horribly, it dawns on me that it’s the gym bag I dropped there on my way in
today—just as Pascha stands upright and turns toward me.
Grinning lecherously.
He lifts it to his face and sniffs deeply, making my skin crawl as the bile rises
in my throat.
“Mmm…delicious.”
“Don’t play innocent and bashful with me, little girl,” he chuckles darkly.
“We both know you’re neither of those things when it comes to men now.”
My stomach heaves. I hate that this man knows about, and probably thinks
about, my sex life.
Fucking ick.
“Which position were you in when you first got fucked like a ten-dollar
whore by a stranger?”
I regret saying it the second it leaves my lips. Because the way his jaw
clenches tells me I’m righter than I ever wanted to be about that.
He terrifies me. And the fact that I’m alone with him right now sends my
anxiety skyrocketing.
“Or…” he leers. “Perhaps it never happened? Perhaps you lied about
whoring yourself out to another man in order to get out of the arrangement
your father made with you?”
Pascha grabs me and shoves me back hard against the side of my desk. Terror
and fear explode through me as his hand jams down between us and shoves
under the hem of my skirt.
And then I go still and cold as the naked edge of his knife presses to my
throat. Panic and terror claw their way through me as I stand there, horrified,
pinned to the desk with his hand resting on my thigh and his weapon against
my jugular.
“You would do very well indeed to be nicer to me, bitch,” Pascha snarls into
my ear.
“Watch me.”
“My father—”
“I am like a son to your father,” Pascha snaps. “You, on the other hand, are
nothing more than a whore.”
His hand grabs my thigh, reaching higher as bile and vomit churn together in
my stomach.
The door to my office swings open. Instantly, Pascha’s hand yanks back out
from under my skirt as he jumps back from me. Still frozen, all I can do is
swivel my eyes to the door, just in time to see Leo walk through, distracted
by the phone to his ear.
“Not a fucking word,” he hisses quietly. “Or you will regret it. And we both
know he trusts me over you anyway.”
I hate how right Pascha is. He really is like Leo’s son, from everything I’ve
seen. If I told Leo what Pascha just did to me, he’d probably tell him to go
ahead and do it some more.
My pulse is still racing and my skin is still crawling from being touched by
that fucking creep when the door opens again.
This time, it’s Nora who walks in. My face drains of color.
My sister’s brows fly up as she tears her eyes from her phone. “We…have a
lunch date?”
I wince.
Suddenly, Leo’s done with his call and slipping his phone into his jacket
pocket. He turns to smile icily at me.
“Aha. Just the lawyer I was looking for.”
My heart is racing, fear surging through my veins. Only now, it’s not because
I’m scared of what Pascha or Leo might do to me.
It’s because Nora just unwittingly walked into the middle of all this.
“Nora, can I get a minute with”…I clear my throat, turning to level my gaze
at my father…“Mr. Stavrin?”
Nora’s brow furrows. But then she grins. “Oh, you mean Leo?”
Leo chuckles. “We rode up in the elevator together. I was telling Nora here
what a great lawyer her big sister is!”
“And she was telling me all about school. And her dancing, actually!”
“You know, Nora,” Leo sighs, “my wife was a dancer, too. She passed,
sadly.”
I want to throw up. Or scream. Or stab him in the face with whatever even
remotely sharp object I can get my hands on. Or all three of those things
together.
Instead, I can only watch in horror as Nora’s face fills with sympathy as she
eats up his bullshit.
Her brow knits, but she nods. Generally speaking, for all her teenage angst
and occasional sass, she’s pretty great about respecting my work.
“Why don’t you stay here with my business associate?” Leo grins. “Your
sister and I can talk business out on the balcony.”
Before I can say a thing, he surges toward me, wraps a hand tightly around
my forearm, and starts to pull me after him toward the sliding door that leads
out to the balcony off my office.
“Nora—”
“She’ll be just fine with Pascha,” Leo chuckles with an affable laugh as he
slides open the balcony door. He tugs me through it and then slams it shut,
leaving us alone.
I yank my arm violently out of his grip, snarling. “You stay the fuck away
from her!”
Leo laughs, grinning. “Oh, but there’s so much to tell her, Elsa.”
I could cheerfully murder him. It’s the same shit he used to say to my mother
when I was eleven and Nora had just been born. That since my mother hadn’t
been “putting out enough” for him, Nora was obviously some other man’s
child.
The accusation was absurd. My mother was stuck on Leo. Sick with him, like
a disease, despite all of his cruelty, violence, and womanizing.
But the one silver lining to Leo’s suspicions and accusations about Nora’s
parentage was that it was the straw that broke his back. My sister wasn’t even
one yet when Leo finally up and left for good.
“I’m not doing this with you again, asshole,” I hiss at him.
“She isn’t, Elsa,” Leo snaps back. “I’m sorry if the truth hurts, but she—”
“Shut. Up.”
I know I could run a paternity test on Nora. In fact, I’ve almost done so,
perhaps two dozen times. But I never go through with it. Sometimes, I
wonder if it’s the fear of him being right, and what it would do to Nora’s and
my relationship if it turned out that way.
But that’s ridiculous. Because even if Leo was right, or even if my mother
straight up found her on the streets, Nora would still be, and would always
be, my sister.
I turn, flinching when I see her talking to Pascha back inside my office,
unaware that she’s talking to a predator.
“What the hell do you want, Leo?” I snap coldly.
“I want to know where things are sitting with you getting us what we want.”
“Work harder.”
I glare at him. “I’m their attorney, not their confidante, Leo. And I’m not
personally involved in whatever you think they’re involved with concerning
Serj Mirzoyan.”
“I’m not,” I hiss. “At the last meeting I was at with them, they asked me and
the other attorney present to leave the room when it was about to come up . I
am not involved. I know none of the details.”
I roll my eyes in exasperation. “That isn’t how it works. I’m a lawyer, Leo,” I
snap. “Not a mafia henchman.”
“Get close to them,” he growls. “Learn about their plans. I don’t know, fuck
one of them if you have to. I hear that’s your thing now.”
“You’ll get me what I fucking want, or we’ll move on to Nora and see what
she can offer.”
“Won’t I?”
He turns his head. Shuddering, I follow his gaze inside the office. Instantly, I
go cold. Inside, Pascha is showing Nora something on his phone. They laugh
together at whatever they’re watching, and then he lays the phone down on
my desk.
In horror, I watch Nora bend over, her elbows on the desk to get a better look
as she laughs at the video. Pasha, meanwhile, stays standing. He slowly turns,
letting his creepy gaze stab into mine through the glass between us. Then he
turns back, his eyes dropping lasciviously to Nora’s ass.
I make for the door, a roar in my throat. But I’m stopped and the sound is
abruptly cut off as Leo grabs me by the throat and shoves me back against the
balcony railing.
“Shut up.”
I jolt, stiffening as he pulls back his jacket to flash the butt of the gun in the
holster under his arm.
“Please…”
“Gavan is young and trying to find balance,” Leo hisses. “But his priority is
always and will always be the business. He cares about the results, not my
methods. Trust me on that.”
He releases my arm. Instantly, I bolt inside, storm over to the desk, and yank
Pascha’s phone away from Nora.
I say it pointedly, glaring death at Leo as he steps back inside, and then
leveling pure hatred at Pascha. He plucks his phone from my outstretched
hand, smirking at me in that creepy way of his before he heads to the door.
When Leo does the same, I follow him, ready to slam and lock the door
behind him. But he stops suddenly in the doorway, turning to lower his
mouth to my ear.
“I have no problems doing the worst you can imagine to the offspring of the
woman you called mother and whatever five-dollar-fuck brought that brat
into the world. Get me what I want, Elsa. Or you’ll regret it. And I can
promise you, Nora certainly will too.”
14
HADES
I grin through the blood in my mouth, spitting some of it out onto the grimy
floor between my feet. I look up from the locker room bench to see Sean
shaking his head.
“Bring that intensity to one of our sparring matches, and you might actually
beat me.”
He chuckles and snaps a towel at me. “Well, you might not lose as badly, at
least.”
Normally, it would be unheard-of for real estate like this to sit around unsold
or undeveloped for so long in New York. But we’re way out in Brooklyn—
past the hipster hangouts and ironic bars, past the Marcy Projects, past, well,
everything.
This is no-man’s land. Which actually makes it pretty ideal for the
underground boxing matches and occasional EDM raves the two Israeli
dudes who own this place use it for.
“How’s Lamar?”
“Ech, he’ll be fine. But you reset him to default passwords with that last hit.
Holy fuck, Hades.”
Sean chuckles. “Relax. He’s gonna be fine. But for real, man. Where the fuck
did that come from tonight? Who were you fighting out there?”
I mean, not literally or figuratively. I wasn’t hitting Lamar picturing her face
or anything psycho like that. But I was swinging to smash away the chemical
addiction to her I seem to have developed.
Break the chain that keeps me circling her like a snarling dog, unable to run
away. But I have to break it. I have to pull myself back from whatever insane,
irrational attraction I have toward the snarky, frosty little lawyer.
There’s no way anything good would come from any of that. Not a chance.
The best-case scenario that could come of me pursuing…whatever this is
with Elsa Guin…is that she would become just one more woman out there
with an ax to grind with me after I invariably piss her off or ghost her.
Worst-case scenario, she could drop my family from her legal schedule. Not
just refuse to become our full-time counsel, like Ares keeps gunning for. I
mean drop us as in quit whatever she’s working on with us through Crown
and Black. And that’s a lot.
I know Elsa makes a big show of distancing herself from the darker and more
sinister work she’s done for us—like overseeing the removal of that dead
body from Ares and Neve’s wedding, for instance, and locking down the
band and the guests on the official story. But I can tell she secretly kind of
loves it. There’s a thrill she desperately tries to hide in her eyes that I know
I’ve spotted while she’s working things like that for us, and it makes her just
click with the Drakos family.
That’s a rare thing to find. And I don’t think it would be easily found again in
other legal counsel. Which means fucking around with her, and inevitably
pissing her off, is a gigantically terrible idea.
If I could just convince the rest of me that can’t stop thinking about the taste
of her lips, the whimper of her submission, the silken feel of her cunt
swallowing my cock, and the sensual way her body begged me for more…
After I shower and get dressed, Sean and I head over to the other locker room
to check on Lamar. He gives me a wary look from where he’s slumped on a
bench. But he does grin and shake my hand when I squat down to tell him
what a good fight it was.
“Bro, you were a fuckin’ animal out there.”
When we’re done there, Sean takes off to go meet Maya after her shift at the
restaurant. I sit on the fender of my Z28, sipping a beer under the dingy glow
of flickering streetlight.
“Does it work?”
I frown, startled by the voice from the shadows. When I turn and peer into
them, a slender, pale young guy with dark, beady eye, a shaved head, and a
pock-marked face slips out of the darkness. The acid-wash jeans and tight
jean jacket paint him pretty clearly to me as European.
“No. Fighting in the gutter. Does it make you feel less like the privileged
little princeling you are?”
Russian.
And slowly, I realize I know him: Pascha Andreev, one of Leo Stavrin’s
goons. I’ve seen him around The Pearl here and there, and skulking around
with Leo the couple of times I’ve tailed him.
He obviously knows who I am. But I don’t know a thing about him, aside
from the fact that he looks like a complete, utter creep. And that fixed smile
of his and the unblinking way he’s just staring at me aren’t exactly doing
much to change that impression.
“Nope,” I shrug, answering his question with a dry smile. “But what can I
say? I just like hitting people.”
I keep my body language casual. But I do tense a little on the inside when he
slips a hand into the pocket of his jacket. The hand comes back out, but only
with a pack of Russian cigarettes, not a weapon. I watch coolly as he slips
one between his lips and lights it before holding the pack out to me.
“You want?”
“I’m good.”
He nods, his eyes locking with mine. “So is continuing to spend time with
Elsa Guin.”
“Excuse me?”
Slowly, I slide off the fender of the Camaro, my gaze lasering through the
flickering light from the streetlamp between us.
I slowly cross the distance between us. “You know what? I’ve got something
else you can add to that list of things that are bad for your health.” I come to a
stop right in front of him, glaring darkly at him. “Giving me orders.”
He doesn’t respond. He just drags on his smoke, his eyes never leaving mine.
I turn and begin to walk away. Then he opens his goddamn mouth again.
And I see fucking red. Pure, malignant, vengeful red. I know strategically I
should cage my emotions right now. But one, fuck that. And two, there’s no
way I can contain the snarl of fury that explodes from my mouth.
My vision glitches from the effort it’s taking not to snap right now and break
his face.
But honestly, the fact that I’m even at this point, that it even bothers me this
much, is much more worrisome than the fact that I’m ready to throw down
with one of Gavan Tsarenko’s underlings.
Because I am not this man. I don’t get all territorial with women. Not because
I’m a pussy or because I’m not willing to fight for what I want, or what’s
mine. But because I’ve simply never given a shit.
Well, apparently, that’s changed. Because right now, I very much give a lot
of shits about what the fuck this little creep is saying about Elsa.
“I’m going to give you some free diplomatic advice,” I snarl quietly. “Walk
away. Right—”
“Yes, she fucks random men, little prince,” Pascha leers at me, clearly
enjoying himself. “She fucked one to lose her maidenhood just the other
night, like a complete slut.”
Everything goes still. I tense, blinking, as I try and process what he just said.
He laughs. “I said Elsa Guin let some man take her one valuable, tradable
asset at a club of sin just the other night.”
Holy.
Fucking.
Shit.
She jumped me that night and had me bring her back to one of the rooms to
fuck her…to take her goddamn virginity?
Pascha all but giggles in his glee to tell me. “Club Venom. A place for
whores like her to fuck strange men with masks on, as if to hide their
shamefulness.”
I can’t tell if I wanted him to say something different—to name some other
club where Elsa might have recently gone to screw some other guy and lose
her virginity. Or if hearing that would have sent me into a murderous rage.
Club Venom.
The other night.
“Who knows?” Pascha chuckles, tossing his cigarette away. “Maybe it wasn’t
even only one man. Maybe she fucked a whole room full of dick—”
“You will shut your fucking mouth and you will go tell your boss to keep his
nose out of my family’s business. Whom we do business with, or who we use
for legal services, are none of his concern. Consider this a warn—”
“It’s a shame, isn’t it?” Pascha drones on. “What a sweet, fuckable mouth she
has, no? And that tight little ass? I’m actually a little angry. The number of
times I’ve emptied my balls imagining being the first man to pound through
that sweet little cunt—”
He chokes as my fist smashes into his nose, shattering it and sending blood
streaming down his face. He squeals like a stuck pig as he collapses to the
ground, holding his ruined face. I crouch down next to him, my lips curled
dangerously.
“Next time I tell you to shut your mouth,” I snarl. “I’d suggest you do it. And
tell Leo to go fuck himself.”
I stand, spit on him, and leave him where he is on the filthy ground before I
storm back to my car and roar away.
D ESPITE SMASHING P ASCHA ’ S NOSE , and driving around the city like a maniac
for the last two hours, by the time I finally get back home I’m still on fire.
I really don’t think there’s any connection between her and Leo, or Gavan.
Unless it’s all under-the-table shit, but I sincerely doubt that. Even the times
she’s helped our family with less than squeaky-clean things—like the body at
Ares and Neve’s wedding—she’s insisted on billing us the hours using
squeaky-clean methods. Even if it meant invoices with things like “privacy
and marriage consultations”, in the case of that wedding.
No, she’s not working for the Russians. Though, that does beg the question of
what the fuck Leo’s little bitch-boy was doing telling me to stay away from
Elsa. Like, why do they care?
I slug back half of my drink, my jaw grinding as I go through the dossier I’ve
compiled on her. There really isn’t much. Government-funded schooling in
the UK’s version of a poor, crumbling public school, and then a merit-based
scholarship to Cambridge, where she got her BA in law in two years instead
of the usual three. Top of her class, because obviously.
She clawed her way up through three of the most prestigious firms in the UK,
rising all the way to senior associate at her last job before the offer of partner
status at Crown and Black brought her to New York. Her trial record is nearly
perfect, too, with a staggering ninety-two percent win rate.
As much as the idea of her being with any other man makes me want to crush
the crystal tumbler in my hand to dust, there’s no goddamn way I was the
first guy she slept with. I understand I’ve had a less than healthy sex life that
started entirely too young. But nobody—especially anyone as fucking hot as
Elsa—stays a virgin until they’re twenty-six. Not a chance.
But the more I scroll through and stalk her admittedly sparse social media
presence, the less sure I become of that conviction.
Sure, there’s pictures of her all dolled up at galas and work functions, some
where she’s even standing next to and smiling with men. But none of them
look even remotely like romantic or sexual partners. They’re very obviously
coworkers and colleagues.
I keep digging, finding more recent pictures of her here in New York—some
taken at a function standing next to Gabriel and Alistair Black. A few with
some other legal-looking dipshit.
But that’s it. There’s not a single man in any picture with her who looks like
an obvious boyfriend.
It can’t be true.
Unless it is.
I mean, she works a million hours a week. Her workload is insane. And on
top of that, she’s basically been raising a kid. Maybe she’s truly never had
time for a boyfriend. But you don’t need to be in an established relationship
to get fucked now and again. I mean I’ve literally never had a girlfriend, and
I’ve been with more women than I can remember.
A vicious scowl suddenly tightens across my face at the thought of Elsa out
there having casual sex with random men.
Or any sex at all, with any man who isn’t me.
Just like earlier, in the parking lot with Pascha, the violence I feel rising up
inside me even thinking about her with another man shocks me.
What if the other night with me, despite all the improbabilities, really was her
first time? I know most guys would feel smug about that—all triumphant and
puffed up.
Not me.
I’ve never wanted to be anyone’s first. Because fuck that. It’s not because I’m
worried about virgins “getting clingy”, which seems to be a serious concern
for every male character in every teen comedy ever.
I’ve never wanted to deal with virgins because your first time means
something.
Sex is an escape for me, nothing more. A way to tune out the world and the
darkness inside of me. I don’t lose myself in women.
But the other reason I’m not fist-pumping or patting myself on the goddamn
back for the very real potential that I was Elsa’s first is that she used me,
from the sounds of it.
And I fucking really hate when a woman uses me and sex to get something
she wants.
Gritting my teeth, I close the laptop, plunging the room into darkness. I can
feel my fury surging inside, my anger at Elsa and her bullshit boiling up into
a frenzy.
Except it doesn’t boil over. I want it to. But every time I try to push it there, I
get sidetracked by replays of that night.
That hungry look in her eyes as she dragged her nails down my back and
begged for more.
I’ve never wanted to be someone’s first. Except suddenly, the idea of being
Elsa’s first fills me with…
Hunger.
Desire.
Possessiveness.
M Y EYES ACHE . Blinking and wincing, I pull back from the computer screens,
rolling my shoulders, realizing I’ve been mere inches away from them as I
pore over the legal briefing Taylor forwarded me earlier today.
Hours ago. Hours that have flown by in a haze of legal jargon. I dimly
remember Fumi being the guardian angel and amazing friend that she is,
dropping off lunch for me earlier. Then checking in on me again at the end of
the workday.
I did check in with Nora earlier, and sent her a delivery from her favorite
sushi spot for her dinner. I glance down at my phone and grin at the text
message from her still sitting on the screen:
NORA
Best. Sister. Ever. I’m saving you some - NOT ALL - of this
jaguar roll. Love ya
I quickly reread the last paragraph of the briefing I’ve just spent eleven hours
going through.
Finished.
I’m about to open a new document to type out the notes I’ve taken on the
briefing for Taylor, because even if she doesn’t even need this until next
week, I’m a psycho like that. But just then, my phone dings with a message.
TAYLOR CROWN
You’d better not still be at the office with that Klein briefing.
TAYLOR CROWN
OMG, no. NO. Fuck everything about that. I can’t believe you
read the whole damn thing today. Get out of there right now!
That’s an order!
ME
You’re the boss. Okay, I’m packing it in.
Honestly, thank God for her rational thinking, because writing my notes out
tonight would have been pure insanity.
So I close down my work computer. But I don’t immediately get up. Even
though there’s a sister and sushi waiting for me at home. Instead, blushing
even though there’s no one here, I pull up Instagram on my phone.
Most of Hades’ feed is filled with pictures of his car, or boxing gloves, or old
books, which the skeptic in me assumes is curated to look artsy and
interesting, probably to woo and impress women.
You seemed to have screwed him no problem without seeing his artsy, book
post-y self.
I simmer, biting my lip as I scroll through his posts. Past the pictures of his
dark, British-racing-green Camaro, and the boxing stuff, and the books, and a
couple of promo posts about the Irish pub I’ve been helping Callie, Neve, and
Eilish get ready to open, there are…other pictures. Pictures I would normally
use, at least to myself, as ammunition to make fun of his vanity and his whole
“hot, rich, and dangerous to know” vibe.
Pictures like the one of him shirtless, half in shadow and dripping in sweat, as
if he’s just come back from a run or the gym.
But I can’t.
Obviously, it’s his abs that pull the eye first. Half in shadow, and the way the
light hits them, they look insane, almost as if he’s photoshopped them.
Except I know he hasn’t.
I know what they feel like grinding against my ass, or pinning me to the wall.
I flush deeply.
I know what the sweat on those chiseled abs and sinfully grooved hip lines
angling down into his gym shorts tastes like.
It’s not just the shadowed abs, hip grooves, and chest that I like about this
picture. It’s his face. It’s also half shadowed in the shot, with one side almost
completely dark.
The one on the lit side is sexy enough, with that cool, ice-blue stare. But it’s
his eye on the shadowed side of his face that I think is what I like most about
this picture.
It’s the intensity of it. The way that even if the rest of that side of his face is
in shadow, the eye seems to spark. It’s intense, and powerful, and makes me
shiver.
But not one of them, at least not that I’ve seen, mentions the shadowed eye.
And I kind of like that. It’s as if that look I see every time I perv this picture
is for me and me alone. My dirty little secret.
I obviously know about Hades’ reputation. I know ours was probably one of
a string of a million nights just like it for him, all with different women ready
and willing to do anything and everything with him.
That makes me furious. Like, stabby furious, even if I have no right to feel
that way. Because I did trick him into sleeping with me. And I did it knowing
exactly who and what he was. Is.
But still, even if thinking about all those other girls being with him makes me
want to scream, I can block them out. And I do that by letting my mind go
blank and simply reliving that one night.
Every touch. Every kiss. Every whimpered moan from my lips and growled
command from his. And once I’m drowning in the heat of those memories,
everything else fades away until I can imagine that it’s just him, and me.
Just me.
My face goes white as I stare at the solid red heart icon. Crap, I don’t even
follow Hades. As far as I know, he doesn’t even know I’m on Instagram at
all, let alone creeping his pictures.
And I just “liked” one of the hottest pics on his feed, which was posted like
fifteen months ago.
Holy cringe.
I could unlike it, but he’ll still get the notification. Groaning, I close the app
and drop the phone on my desk before my eyes drag up to the door.
I was ashen enough for “liking” Hades’ abs. When Pascha walks into my
office at ten-fifteen at night, I go white with fear.
Pascha’s lips curl up at the corners, as if he’s caught the scent of my fear, and
he’s getting off on it. Which might actually be the case.
“Look, it’s only been a few days. If you want me to find something on the
Drakos family, you’re going to need to have a little more patience—”
Pascha comes to a stop by my desk, leaning against it casually with that thin,
creepy smirk on his face.
My insides turn so cold they could actually freeze and crack. I try to swallow,
but it’s futile. I try to breathe, to utter a single word, but nothing comes.
“Whom I sleep with is the furthest thing from your business you can possibly
imagine,” I hiss quietly.
“Ahh…” he grins, slowly raising a finger and shaking it, along with his head
from side to side. “But not in this case. Because he’s the enemy. The very
enemy your father wants you to be spying on. And instead you went out and
fucked him.” Pascha’s eyes turn dangerous. “This does not paint you in a very
good light, now does it?”
The room goes quiet. My pulse thuds heavily, my blood thick in my veins as
I try and hold back the sheer terror. Because Pascha is like a shark right now,
circling me, sniffing for blood in the water. If I show fear, that’s like opening
a vein. And he won’t waste a second in tearing me in half.
He smiles coldly. “No. I don’t think we’re even a little bit close to done
here.”
His lips curl. “There’s getting close, and getting too close. One could
consider what you did spying. Or, that you’re working with the Drakos
snakes against your father’s and Gavan Tsarenko’s interests. And that would
not be wise…”
“…or healthy.”
“I won’t, really.”
He moves close. I don’t want to, because I do not want to show him how
scared I am right now, but I take a step back almost on instinct.
Pascha grins.
My skin crawls at the lascivious way his eyes slowly drift up and down my
whole body when he says it.
“Leave,” I choke.
“Are you sure? If I leave right now, it’s not going to end well for you.”
My teeth grind, hatred and abject fear twisting in my stomach like two blades
as his words hang in the air.
“No.”
“No? Then things are about to get ugly for you.” He grins. “And for your
sister.”
No…
“Maybe she will be happy to show me what’s been growing under that
training bra—”
“Fuck. YOU,” I snarl, venom dripping from my lips.
“Gladly. Now fucking show me, or I will be at Nora’s door next, and I won’t
be asking her for the same thing quite so nicely.”
“Here!”
It’s the pure, unimaginable horror of him harming Nora. The very idea of this
monster touching her, or even thinking about her like that, smashes down
every last barrier and shred of resistance I have left.
“Fine! Here!”
Pascha’s brows lift. “A little. But not completely. The bra, too.”
“Please…”
“Oh yes. I’ll enjoy this so much more if you use that word.”
I could try to protest or fight him on this. But it’s already over, and he knows
it. Threatening Nora was the final stroke.
Anything.
I go into a numb, fugue state, like I’m shutting down or checking out of
reality. I look away from Pascha as I unclasp the front of my bra, feeling the
cool air against my skin.
Feel the malignant touch of his gaze drift across my body, slowly turning me
to stone.
“Get on your knees.”
I choke, actually dry heaving as the horror of what’s happening fully crashes
down on me. My eyes drag back to him, pleading.
“No—”
I sob when I see the blade flick open in his hand, his beady eyes filled with
predatory hunger.
“Don’t do this…”
“Make it good, my little whore,” he snarls. “No teeth, or I’ll cut your throat
and fuck that in—”
The door to my office slams open so hard it almost breaks off the hinges. I
can’t see properly through the tears blurring my vision. All I see is a dark
shape fly across the room, roaring, and slam into Pascha like a truck.
It’s only then, as I watch them both go crashing over my desk chair, that I
realize it’s Hades.
There’s no long, drawn-out fight. They don’t trade blows. Hades just kneels
astride Pascha’s heaving chest—arms bulging, teeth bared, and eyes demonic
—as his hands wrap tight around Pascha’s throat.
And squeeze.
And squeeze.
And squeeze, ignoring the flapping, flailing motions of the Russian’s arms.
Ignoring the knife as Pascha makes one weak, futile attempt to stab him.
Ignoring even the way I’m staring at this grisly scene unfolding right in front
of me, as if I’m in a nightmare from which I can’t wake up.
Pascha’s arms drop and go limp. His body stops jerking and writhing. His
chest stops rising and falling, and his head lolls to the side, eyes wide and
staring at nothing.
I blink, and slowly, my eyes lift. They find Hades’, blazing right back into
me with a look of pure, lethal power.
Pure possessiveness.
S HE ’ S SO white that for a moment, I worry that the piece of shit cut her. That
the paleness in her face and the blue of the veins across her neck are because
she’s bleeding out from a wound I can’t see.
It’s just that she’s more terrified than I’m guessing she’s ever been in her life.
She’s immobile, barely even flinching as I close her blouse and pull her to
her feet. Her eyes have a lost, faraway look in them as she stares past me at
Pascha’s body.
Wordlessly, I drag her into the bathroom and away from the grisly scene
spread across her rug. That seems to help, because suddenly, she’s focusing
again—blinking, looking confused, unsure how she got from there to here as
I sit her down on the closed toilet seat.
“Hades…”
“Stay here.”
Her hand grabs my wrist in a death grip as I turn to walk out of the bathroom.
“I’ll be right back,” I growl quietly, lowering to look her in the eye. “I’m not
going anywhere.”
Elsa has a bar cart in her office, like any self-respecting high-powered lawyer
who never sleeps and runs on pure ambition and drive. Ignoring the searing
pain in my shoulder from where the fucker sliced me, I pour a very heavy
splash into a tumbler and then bring it back to the bathroom.
“Drink.”
She nods, trembling as her hands wrap around the glass and bring it to her
lips.
“The whole thing,” I growl quietly. “And then I need you to stay right here.”
Back in the office, I work quickly, rolling up the rug with Pascha’s body in it,
and doing a cursory sweep for any blood. This will never be a crime scene, so
it’s not like I need to go out and buy bleach and a black light. Once I’m
confident there’s no obvious blood or any other signs of what just happened
here, I pull out my phone.
“Probably not.”
He sighs heavily, slowly. “Yeah, first thing tomorrow at eight. I’m guessing
you want me to tell the foreman not to look too hard in the pit before
pouring?”
“Bingo.”
“Thanks.”
I glance first at the gash on my shoulder soaking my T-shirt with blood, then
at the body rolled up in Elsa’s rug.
Back in the bathroom, Elsa’s glass is almost empty, and Elsa herself is
looking a lot better, with more color to her cheeks. She frowns, stiffening
when she sees the blood on my shoulder.
“And you’re bleeding, a lot,” she throws back. “Let me see it.”
I lean against the sink, watching Elsa as she stands next to me and delicately
pulls back the sliced-open T-shirt sleeve. She winces and makes a face as her
eyes drag up to mine.
“Yeah, well, I don’t really have time for stitches right now.”
Elsa nods, turning and opening one of the vanity drawers. She pulls out one
of those little sewing kits for putting buttons back on dress shirts. My jaw
tightens, and she glances at me.
“It’s more that, one you’re not a doctor, and two you just drank a triple shot
of whiskey. But yeah, aside from that, no issues here. All golden.”
She smiles.
“Sit,” she nods at the toilet seat. After I do, she clears her throat, her cheeks
flushing. “Can you, uh…”
I peel my t-shirt off, smirking at the way she looks away from me.
Elsa washes her hands, threads the needle, and then dips it in the dregs of her
whiskey to sterilize it. She leans down to my shoulder, takes a deep breath,
and then gets to work.
I grimace, but watch as she deftly pushes the needle through the clean edges
of the knife cut. She works slowly, but she does clearly know what she’s
doing. Which is…a little curious.
“My mother.”
“My father used to…” Elsa grimaces. “He hit her a lot. Sometimes badly, and
often with something. She never wanted to go to the police or the hospital,
because he was a dangerous man. That, and he always threatened to make
sure she’d lose me if he ever got put away.”
“I’m sorry.”
She shrugs. “It was a whole other lifetime ago.” She swallows, pushing the
needle through once again. “So is the whole ‘show no pain’ routine like a
macho thing you do?”
Elsa nods.
“That, and my oldest brother used to beat the ever-living fuck out of me when
we were young.”
“Yeah. I think you met him once, when you were still in England?”
She nods.
“He was an asshole, and I’m glad he’s gone, even if he was my brother.”
I have no idea how or why any of that pops out. I don’t tell anyone about how
Atlas used to pummel me. And I’ve never put how I feel about his death into
actual, out-loud words, even to my siblings.
Elsa finishes the last two stitches wordlessly. Then, with a nod, she uses a
pair of nail clippers to cut the remaining thread away with a satisfied nod.
She smiles briefly, but it quickly fades as worry crosses her face and she
turns to stare at the door to her office.
“So… Now what?” she says in a small voice that makes me want to stand
between her and the world.
In the end, I manage to jump from Elsa’s balcony to the one attached to the
office next to hers, and then to the one next to that. From there, I can reach
the window-washers’ platform, where I snag a spare coil of rope, and then
jump back to Elsa’s.
I use the rope to hoist the rolled-up rug from her balcony up to the roof of the
building. From there, we take the maintenance elevator down to the garage
beneath the building and deposit Pascha in his carpet casket into the trunk of
my waiting car.
Yes, we.
Elsa’s silent as we drive uptown to the project on ninety-ninth street that the
Adamos family—one of the Drakos family’s several vassal families—is
overseeing. The one that is slated to have its foundation poured tomorrow,
which will now and forever be this piece of shit’s final resting place.
“Stay here,” I murmur when I stop the car just inside the construction gates.
I half expect her to fight me on that, because why break with tradition. But
Elsa does indeed stay put as I close the gates, pop my trunk, and then drag
Pascha’s dead ass to the edge of the foundation pit. In he goes, carpet and all,
followed by a generous scoop of dirt from one of the earth-movers nearby.
It’s done.
When I get back to the car, I shut the door, but don’t turn the engine on quite
yet. Instead, we both just sit there in the dark, staring out into the city night.
Slowly, I turn to her. She’s still looking straight ahead. The glow of the
dashboard illuminates her soft face and tight jaw.
I don’t have to bring this up right now. But I can’t not bring it up anymore,
either.
Elsa swallows, chewing on her lower lip as she turns to face me with guarded
eyes.
“I didn’t jump—”
“Potayto, potahto. Why’d you kiss me? Why’d you pick me?”
She shivers, still chewing on her bottom lip as she looks away. “I… I don’t
know.”
“I guess because your reputation told me you’d at least know what you were
doing.”
“Do what?”
“Go to Club Venom, or any club for that matter, and fuck some random guy
to blow off steam?”
Elsa’s face heats as her throat bobs up and down. “I…do what I need to—”
The car goes silent, and she goes stock still, apart from the pulsing vein in her
delicate neck and at her temple.
She doesn’t have to say a word for me to know I’m fucking right. Her sharp
inhalation and the way her eyes bulge a little give her away.
So it’s true.
I was the man to take her virginity and sink a hard cock into her for the very
first time.
And, again, I can’t tell if that pisses me right the fuck off, or fills me with a
savage, primal sense of entitlement.
Possessiveness.
Covetousness.
“Stop.”
Her mouth snaps shut. Her eyes dart to mine, widening when she sees the raw
hunger in mine, tinged with anger.
She laughs coldly. “Oh yes, I’m sure you positively hated being ‘used’ like
that.”
“You knew who the fuck I was, and what I was, and you let me fall right into
that bed with you, without telling me you were a virgin.”
“Yes!”
“Not quite.”
It just happens. I don’t think, it’s not planned, and I have no idea where to go
from here. All I know is, one second she’s talking and I can’t stop staring into
her eyes, and the next second I’m grabbing her face in my hands possessively
and kissing her like she belongs to me.
Elsa moans into my lips, whimpering before she suddenly pulls back with a
gasp. Her hand comes up, her fingertips running softly over her puffy lips as
her eyes lock on mine.
“What are you doing?” she breathes, whimpering once more when I cup her
jaw again.
W E ’ RE TUMBLING into the back seat of his car before I can even comprehend
it. It doesn’t do a thing to stop the voracious way I’m kissing him, just as
hard and as recklessly as he’s kissing me.
I moan as I fall back, my legs wrapping around his hips as his tongue invades
my mouth. He pulls away from me just enough to yank off his t-shirt, his
muscled torso chiseled and lean in the shadowy darkness of the car.
He hisses as I reach up, kissing and then sucking on his firm chest, dragging
my teeth across his skin. As if I want to gnaw a hole in him and crawl all the
way in. I bite him again, and Hades snarls, grabbing a fistful of my hair and
yanking me back to slam his mouth to mine.
He all but rips my blouse open, sending at least two of the buttons scattering
onto the floor. My bra is next, and suddenly I’m arching my back and hissing
in pleasure as his lips wrap around one of my nipples. I cry out as his teeth
bite down, sending an electric shock of pleasure ripping through my core
before he pulls back to level his fierce gaze at me.
The way he looms over me in the darkness, like some sexy, predatory animal,
has my skin tingling and my core throbbing with need. Like he’s this
conquering, savage Viking, ready to stake his claim after razing a village.
But that is only part of it. He isn’t just the man who took my virginity in that
club. He’s not just the gorgeous, dangerous man who’s managed to slide his
way into my brain and invade my every thought and desire.
He’s the man who literally just killed for me, and now, he’s taking what he’s
owed.
Hades kisses me fiercely again before his mouth drags to my neck. I moan
when he bites hard—so hard he might have drawn blood. All it does is make
me rip and yank harder at his clothes with an urgency that sends me reeling.
I shove his jeans down, shuddering and moaning as I slip my hands into his
boxers and wrap my fingers around his hard, thick cock. Hades snarls,
pushing my thighs wide apart as he shoves his jeans and boxers down.
My mouth sears to his as he yanks the crotch of my panties to the side, and in
one thrust, he savagely buries every inch of his huge cock deep inside me.
I cry out, whimpering and moaning into his mouth as he fists the back of my
hair. He snarls, his hips rolling as he pounds in and out of me, shoving me
right to the edge of my release in seconds. I cling to him, my nails clawing
down his back and his biceps as they ripple beneath his tanned, tattooed skin.
“I was your fucking first,” he rasps against my lips. “I was the man to tear
into this pretty little pussy for the first time. To feel you squeeze so fucking
tight around my cock. To feel you come undone around me.”
“I was the first man to fuck you, kitten. And I’ll be the only man to fuck you.”
Maybe it’s the way he’s fucking me like he’s trying to kill me. But even more
than that I think it’s those words snarling from his lips that shove me over the
precipice. I cry out, shattering and exploding as the orgasm rips through my
body.
Hades doesn’t even slow down. He keeps pounding into me, fucking me right
through my climax even as I scream for more. Then he pulls out, fisting his
cock until suddenly, his hot, white cum is spraying across my skin in thick
ropes across my stomach, my breasts, and my pussy.
His gaze locks with mine as he leans down to kiss me deeply. Then he’s
pulling away, and his finger drags up through the sticky cum on my chest,
scooping it up before he brings it up to my lips.
I whimper as I suck his finger into my mouth and lick it clean. I do it again
when he brings his finger back with more, and then a third time. My pulse
thrums at the primal lust in his eyes and at the sight of his clenched jaw and
coiled muscles as he suddenly moves over me, straddling my chest. His hand
tightens in my hair, our eyes locked as he guides his swollen, still hard,
glistening cock to my mouth.
I take him in, shuddering with heat and whimpering at the low growl that
rumbles from his chest.
“Good girl.”
He pushes deeper, thrusting his thick cock deeper into my throat, his eyes
never leaving mine, that lethal ice-blue stare stabbing right into me. His abs
clench, his hips pump, and he shallowly fucks my mouth until he’s hard as
iron.
I gasp, sucking in air as a mix of spit and precum and my own pussy juice
drips down my chin. He kisses me hard again, invading my mouth with his
tongue before he suddenly pulls away.
“To what.”
“Fuck me.”
“Good girl.”
He rams in ruthlessly, crushing the air from my lungs as I cry out in pleasure.
I choke into the leather of the car seat, moaning and writhing under him as
Hades fucks me like a wild animal. His hips and muscled abs smack my ass
with each thrust, and I gasp when he grabs my hair and tugs on it hard as he
pounds into me. His hand slips under me, pinching my nipples and mauling
my tits as I writhe and beg for more.
And more.
And more and more and more. I never want him to stop fucking me, ever. I
never want him to stop consuming me, or drowning me in his vicious,
weaponized sin.
A rebirth.
His body presses to mine, one arm around me cupping my breasts and the
other squeezing my throat as he rams his huge, gorgeous cock into me all the
way through my orgasm. Suddenly, he bites down hard on my neck, and his
cock swells and surges inside me. His cum spills deep, taking whatever
breath I have left away, until we’re both sinking down into the abyss,
weightless.
I’m a mess.
Bruises and bite marks cover my body, from my jaw down to my thighs. My
hair looks like I just went through a hurricane. Or like I just got fucked silly.
And yet through it all, the one pervasive thought I have is: more.
A lot more.
I turn toward him, blushing when I realize he’s already staring at me with that
cocky smirk and those lethal blue eyes.
Tempting me into sin. Making me want to tell him to drive us somewhere so
he can ravage me all over again until I can’t walk for a week.
And just like that, the bubble I’ve been existing in for the last few hours,
wrapped up in him and only him, pops. And reality hits me like a slap in the
face.
I have a life. I have a career, and responsibilities. I have Nora, for God’s
sake. Exactly what do I think I’m doing playing gangster girlfriend to Hades
fucking Drakos?
“Elsa—”
Hades raises a brow, his cocky grin morphing into a hard look.
“Oh, do you not want to do this? Because if so, that was a fucking stunning
performance just now. Oscar-worthy, even.”
I simmer, my face heating. “That’s not what I mean. I don’t not want to…”
“We’re two consenting adults, Elsa. I don’t see what the problem is.”
“And you in turn seem to enjoy being that good girl bouncing up and down
on my cock and begging for more. There’s really nothing complicated about
that.”
Say no. Say no to all of this and just walk away. Walk away before the
insanity and the gravitational pull from orbiting this close to Hades Drakos
sucks you in.
His jaw grinds, and then slowly, that cocky smirk returns.
“Just fucking.”
I swallow as I reach over, taking his hand and shaking it like we’re closing
some house purchase or something, ignoring the shiver of heat that slides up
my spine at his touch.
“Deal.”
I want to kiss him. But then I wonder if that crosses the line we’ve just drawn
from “just fucking” to “feelings”, even though there’s been a whole lot of
kissing involved in our “just fucking” thus far.
So in the end, I don’t. We just lock eyes, me shivering and shuddering as the
soreness and the aching need in my body throbs incessantly.
He nods.
Upstairs, I manage to sneak inside and get to my room so I can shower the
sins of my night away. I slip into a tank top and shorts, then think better of it
and change into longer pajamas that cover the marks of my aggressive and
savage sexual encounter with the god of the underworld.
Sort of.
We end up chatting for a bit and then watching the newest Ted Lasso episode
before we both head to bed.
I stiffen at the sound of Fumi’s voice behind me in the doorway to the staff
lounge.
A juicy rumor?
“Yeah, that you banged out the entire Klein briefing in one day. But now I’m
really curious as to what sordid little secret you just thought I was talking
about.”
Mercifully, that’s the precise moment the espresso machine finishes with a
ding. Laughing as lightly as I can manage, I turn and then take my time
picking up the little ceramic cup and blowing on it.
“Well, you would, because you just did. But now you know. Bullet-proof,
baby. So spill.”
I swallow back the heat from my face, turning to her as I sip the espresso.
It’s been two days since the insane night in Hades’ back seat. The night
where I fell into sin again, because I’m clearly completely unable to control
myself around him. Which is a problem because one, he’s Hades. But more
to the point two, given that his family employs me, he’s technically my
client.
And that’s a big problem. Not just morally and ethically, but also legally. If
one is following the very strictest letter of the law, a sexual relationship
between a lawyer and their own client is considered sexual abuse.
And yet somehow, this isn’t throwing me into a tailspin. I’m not in panic
mode, worrying about this thing looming over me, ready to wreck my life or
blow it to smithereens.
Pascha.
I’ve seen dead bodies before—on morgue tables, at crime scenes, when I had
to identify our mom, heck, even at Ares and Neve’s wedding.
But I’ve never seen someone become a dead body. I’ve never seen someone
murdered right before my eyes.
Never, that is, until two days ago, when Hades strangled Pascha out of
existence not three feet from me, in my office.
I thought for sure that yesterday, when I had to walk into that same office and
act like I hadn’t seen Hades choke the life out of a man there the night before
that I’d have a nervous breakdown. But I didn’t.
And this morning, I’m not even sure I could tell you exactly where on the
floor it happened. I even picked out a new rug online.
“No?” Fumi needles. “So you just decided to randomly bring neck scarves
back into your rotation again? For absolutely no reason?”
Don’t blush. Don’t blush. Don’t blush—
I blush.
It’s not for no reason. It’s because I’ve got fresh battle wounds courtesy of
the god of the underworld all across my neck. And my breasts. And my ass,
and hips, and thighs.
“I am not.”
“Girl, you know you’re an adult, right? You’re allowed to have whatever sex
you want and not hide it away like a dirty little secret. It’s kind of the one
perk of having to age, pay taxes, and go to work every day.”
Fumi squeals. “Yes. YES. Get it, lady. Dude, I didn’t know how to say this
without sounding like a total jackass, but you needed to get laid. Like,
doctor’s prescription time.”
“You’re not going to tell me anything about him or who he is, are you?”
“Nope.”
She starts to laugh, but then suddenly stiffens. “Oh shit, it’s not one of the
brothers, is it?”
“Brothers?”
She leans close, grinning conspiratorially as she lowers her voice. “Alistair or
Gabriel?”
She grins. “I was going to say, speaking of lurid rumors, the shit I’ve heard
about those two…” she waggles her brows. “Yikes.”
“No.”
“Matthew McConaughey? Because that’s not cool. You know I have dibs.”
“Timothée Chalamet.”
“Oh, I know! The hot bartender at the place across the street that Taylor like
to go for lunch.”
“Negative.”
“Mick Jagger.”
I giggle. “Nyet.”
“A Saudi prince.”
“Nein.”
“Henry Cavill.”
“Non.”
“Hades Drakos.”
I almost have a heart attack. I cough, eyes bulging out of my head as my jaw
hits the floor. Mercifully, Fumi is looking past me at something, and doesn’t
catch the shame and sin written all over my face.
“What?”
“Hades Drakos.”
I swallow, taking a shaky breath just as her eyes slide back to mine.
“Because he’s here, and currently marching toward us looking at you like
he’s about to rip your clothes off and ravish you against the office fridge
whether I leave the room or not.”
Goddammit.
“Ha bloody ha. Right. Let me just turn around and say hello to my nightmare
client—”
The floor drops away when I hear his voice—for real, in person—right
behind me in the doorway to the break lounge.
Fuck.
I don’t turn around to face him. I can’t. Because if I do, I’m not sure I’d be
able to say no even if he did start to rip my clothes off and ravish me against
the fridge right here and now.
“Of course.” Her eyes slide back to mine, very full of questions. Her brow
cocks just enough to say “I’m going to drag this out of you later” before she
clears her throat. “I’ll catch up with you later, Elsa?”
When she’s gone, instantly, it’s like the whole room’s gotten warmer. I still
have my back to him as I walk over to the sink and dump out my undrunk
espresso.
“I’m busy.”
I jolt, gasping as Hades boldly grabs a fistful of my hair. He tugs just hard
enough to pull my head back and pull me against him as his lips brush my
tingling neck.
“Because in sixty seconds, I’m bending you over the nearest flat surface and
fucking you until you see God. If you’d like me to do that here in the break
room, I’m game. How about you?”
Heat explodes across my face and down my chest to pool between my thighs.
My pulse thuds wildly, my legs shaking as they squeeze together with an
achy need.
For him.
I could tell him to fuck off. But I’m wet, and on fire, and I want him. Badly.
Also, he’s crazy enough to make good on that threat, and we both know it.
Tell me about it. I’ve been lying to myself nonstop for the last two days about
him. How I’ll never do it again. How it has to end. How this is a beyond
terrible idea and there’s no way I’ll sleep with Hades ever again.
Because I’m fairly certain I’m going to sleep with Hades again.
Like…right now.
“Tick tock, kitten,” he rasps into my ear, making me bite my lip so hard I
almost taste blood to stop the whimper. “Your office, or right here in the
break room, so the whole firm can watch you getting fucked like the greedy
little cum slut you are.”
I shiver, panting and gripping the counter in front of me with white knuckles
as something sinful and hot erupts inside of me.
“I…”
“Three. Two—”
I pull away, still unwilling to look him in the eye lest I cave and jump him
right here. I walk on unsteady legs, trying to keep my head held high and my
expression business-like as I thread my way through the cubicles across the
main floor.
Hoping to everything that is good and holy that it just looks like I’m headed
to my office with a client to talk legal matters.
“Right through here,” I mumble through the adrenaline and lust roaring
through my veins, gesturing toward my office door as if Hades hadn’t ever
been here before.
I stop outside it, still not meeting his eye as I gesture with my hand. Raw
black energy and a throbbing magnetism radiate from his body as he slides
past me into the office. I step in after him, turning to close the door behind us.
“Hades—”
The buttons of my blouse open violently, and I whimper when his big hands
slide inside. He opens the front clasp of my bra, spilling my breasts into his
hands. Strong fingers pinch and twist my nipples as I clamp my own hand
over my mouth to muffle my unstoppable cries of pleasure.
Suddenly, he’s dropping down to his knees behind me. My eyes widen as he
shoves my skirt up, as if there’s not a huge, fully-staffed legal firm all
working and milling around just on the other side of my office door.
I cry out when he bites—literally bites—my ass. His fingers grab the
waistband of my thong, yanking it down my hips and thighs to tangle at my
knees. His powerful hands grip my ass, lewdly spreading me open as I feel
his hot breath against the back of my thighs.
“I—”
My face caves and my eyes roll back in my head when his mouth dives
between my thighs to cover my pussy. His tongue drags slowly through my
lips, making me squeal into my hand as my toes curl in my high heels.
Hades growls deeply, his thick, powerful fingers digging into my ass as he
drags his tongue up and down my pussy. I cry out when he pushes it inside,
delving deep, as if he’s devouring me from the inside out. My head swims
with pleasure, one hand clawing at the door I’m panting against, the other
clamped painfully between my teeth.
His tongue moves lower to swirl around my aching, needy clit. He wraps his
lips around the throbbing nub, sucking on it, making my legs shake. My eyes
squeeze shut, my brow creasing as I moan into the hand caught in my mouth.
The wet heat between my legs grows and throbs. The way his tongue drags
across my throbbing clit as I drip all over his chin has me seeing double as
my vision blurs.
Slowly, his tongue moves lower, and then back. Then further back. His hands
tighten, spreading me wider open as I feel his tongue suddenly start to drag
up toward…
“Hades…” I choke, caught between the heady, sinful pleasure the tip of his
tongue is dragging out of me as it teases closer and closer to my asshole, and
the shame that this is…dirty.
Too dirty.
Too shameful.
“Hades—”
I reach back, my fingers sliding into his hair to push him away, even if it
feels so fucking good I want to scream.
“Wait—”
I swallow, shivering.
Motherfuck. It’s like that word—that little pet name—is now hardwired into
my brain like a trigger. I’m pretty sure I could be at a freaking funeral, or in
the dentist’s chair getting a root canal, and if he said it, I’d still get instantly
wet.
Hades growls deeply. “I’m going to interpret that as ‘you want me to, you’re
just too ashamed to ask for it’.”
“Hades…”
“Answer me.”
Holy fuck.
“Spread.”
I do. Heat explodes in my face as I feel his eyes brazenly dragging over me in
this incredibly intimate and exposed position. But I’m not ashamed. I’m not
knotted in anxiousness, wanting it to be over.
I moan when his thumb brushes my clit. His mouth lowers, and suddenly, as
his tongue drags lightly over my most private place, I see fucking stars.
“Oh my God…”
The sensation is insane. It’s like discovering nerve endings and pleasure
points I never knew I had. His tongue swirls over my hole, teasing and
prodding and licking, sending my head reeling as the filthy pleasure explodes
through my core.
It’s the combination of the act itself and the sensation being both sinfully
dirty and outrageously intimate at the same time. It’s his thumb rolling my
clit and two of his fingers curling deep into my pussy. His deep, savage,
hungry growls as he tongue-fucks my ass and intermittently spanks me at the
same time.
It’s taking everything I have to keep from screaming in pleasure so loud that
someone on the other side of the door calls the police.
His wet, sinful tongue pushes deeper. His thumb adds more pressure on my
throbbing clit. And my world is just beginning to crack and shatter at the
edges when suddenly, Hades pushes a third finger into my dripping wet
pussy. And it’s game over.
I bite down on my lip so hard that the taste of copper floods my tongue. I cry
out through clenched teeth and bleeding lips, spasming and shaking and
writhing—pushing shamefully back against his tongue and his fingers as my
body explodes.
19
ELSA
Which is exactly when he pulls away, spins me around, and pins me hard
against the door. I moan, still shuddering from the explosive release he just
wrenched out of me as his mouth descends to my neck to leave fresh battle
scars.
He grabs me, easily lifting me up against his body, his hands gripping my ass
and my legs wrapped tight around his hips. Turning, he marches me across
the office, and with one sweep of his arm, he clears my desk of just about
everything except the computer monitors.
Hades’ jaw clenches as he wraps a hand around his cock and pushes the fat
head against my clit, making me whimper eagerly.
“Exactly how many times have you thought about my cock stretching you
wide open and filling you to the fucking brim since the other night?”
“Se-several times.”
“Be. Fucking. Specific, counselor,” he snarls, rubbing the swollen head over
my throbbing clit and sending fresh fireworks exploding through my system.
He groans. “And how many times have you played with this pretty little
pussy, thinking of me fucking it until you come all over my balls?”
“I…”
“Tell me.”
“Good girl.”
I gasp, clawing at him as he sinks the thick head of his cock into me. My eyes
roll back as he pushes another hard inch inside, only to draw back.
“I like that I’m the only man who’s ever felt this sweet little cunt snug around
his cock, kitten,” he growls.
I almost scream, my eyes rolling back as he buries every inch of his cock
inside me with one swift, powerful thrust of his hips.
“Me,” Hades snarls savagely. “I say so. I’m the one who taught this little
pussy how to fuck. How to come with my cock buried deep inside it. How to
get wet and achy and needy when I’m not inside it. So yes, kitten,” he rasps.
“It’s fucking mine.”
He punctuates his words by rolling his hips back and then driving hard into
me again.
I moan as he suddenly shoves me back across the desk, grabs my thighs, and
shoves my legs up high and wide. His hips pound against me, his cock
ramming deep and hard as I start to drown in pleasure.
“What…”
The wet, slippery, swollen head of his cock slides down, and I tremble as I
feel it tease against the tight ring of my ass.
“I was the first to claim that pouty, smart mouth of yours,” he growls. “And
the first to take this pretty little pink cunt.”
I shiver as his thumb rolls over my clit and his cock throbs against my
asshole.
Holy. Fuck.
I can’t tell which is more insane: the idea that Hades is about to fuck me in
the ass for the first time, at my job, on my desk, with an office full of people
twelve feet away. Or the fact that I’m seconds away from begging him to.
He groans as he strokes his slippery cock against my tight hole, dragging his
piercing eyes up to lock with mine.
I jolt, almost falling off the edge of my desk before I manage to catch myself.
Hades snarls, whirling to glare daggers at the door.
“Ms. Guin?”
“Yes?” I choke.
“Ms. Crown wanted to know if you could come to her office to go over the
notes on the Klein briefing?”
Goddammit.
“Uh, when?”
“Right now?”
Shit.
Hades turns, smirking as he teases the head of his still very hard cock over
my ass. I bite down hard on my lip, shivering as my eyes start from their
sockets.
“Stop,” I whisper.
“Why.”
“Tell her you’re busy taking every inch of my fat cock up your virgin ass.”
“Ms. Guin?”
“Wow, already?”
“I have to go.”
I’m still shaking as I slide off my desk, ignoring the disaster zone of papers
and files he’s just swept to the floor. I fix my blouse and my skirt as best I
can, then go to the mirror over the sink in the bathroom.
Good God, I look like I’ve just been fucked sideways. In a tornado.
My core tingles.
“Yes, because that’s exactly what I want to convey walking into a deposition
or a courtroom, Hades. ‘Sexy’. Very professional.”
“Sexy doesn’t have to mean unprofessional. I don’t mean you should walk
into your next case in sheer lingerie and thigh-highs.” He stops, his lips
curling wickedly. “Although I can think of other occasions where that exact
outfit would work.”
I flush deeply.
“Seriously. Sexy can convey power, too. You don’t have to be buttoned up
like a nun with your hair scraped back so tight it affects your vision to come
off as professional or powerful. Your reputation will do that all on its own.”
“Oh.”
He inclines his head, taking me in. “Just my opinion. You should wear your
hair down more often. It doesn’t make you look any less professional or ass-
kicking.”
“Good.”
I’m still throbbing all over as we walk to the door together. Then I stop him.
I jolt as he suddenly surges into me, grabs a handful of my hair in his fist, and
kisses me.
Brutally.
Dear lord.
He’s dangling my thong from his finger, right there in the fucking doorway to
the rest of the firm, with only the fact that his shoulders are so broad stopping
everyone from seeing it.
“Give me—”
It takes me another three minutes to calm myself, catch my breath, and put
some concealer on the fresh bite and suck marks on my neck. Then I walk
upstairs to Taylor’s office, doing everything I can to ignore the aching need
still throbbing between my thighs.
“No problem at all. Have a seat, and we’ll—” She stops suddenly, looking at
me curiously.
“What—”
“Oh, nothing!” she beams. “I was just going to say, love the hair-down look
on you. You should rock that more often!”
I haven’t made the first move to clean them up since I got back from my
meeting with Taylor ten minutes ago.
Because all I’m doing is staring at the edge of my desk, and remembering the
feel of him.
And that’s exactly when the door suddenly bangs open. I look up quickly,
paling as Leo comes storming inside with a dark cloud looming in his eyes.
He slams the door shut behind him, his eyes narrowing at me lethally.
“Yes?” I hiss.
With Hades, I’m utterly incapable of hiding the truth, or any of my emotions.
Mercifully, when it comes to pretty much anyone but him, my experience in a
courtroom serves me well.
“Yes, maybe we do,” I mutter quietly. “And I can tell him how your creep of
a lackey tried to touch me, or how you threatened a fifteen-year-old girl.
Think that would help?”
Leo’s lips curve down. “So, my little girl has claws after all.”
“Have you tried the zoo? Maybe they finally locked him up where he
belongs.”
Leo bristles. “If I don’t find him, I’m coming back. And when I do, I’ll be
much less agreeable about it.”
“Get. Out.”
“Careful, little girl,” he mutters as he turns and opens the door. “You’re
walking a dangerous tightrope here. I’m not sure you understand just how
close you are to falling.”
He’s wrong about that last part. I’m not unaware of how close I am to falling.
The god of the underworld has just made me his real-life Persephone.
It’s just that I’m pretty sure I’m not supposed to be this excited to be dragged
down into sin and temptation.
W HEN I PULL up outside the Jamaican grocery store where I’m having my
meeting with Jayden, I actually have to stay in the car measuring my breaths
for another ten minutes.
You can’t exactly waltz into the closing of a lucrative business deal sporting
a raging hard-on.
Also, blue balls are a real thing, and between my swollen balls and my rock-
hard cock, the discomfort in my slacks still has me gritting my teeth a full
hour after leaving Elsa’s office.
Too good.
She’s too good, too much, and the way my body craves hers, like a drug I
can’t find anywhere else is almost scary.
I scowl, glaring through the windshield into the middle distance as I replay
what just went down in her office. It’s not even anything I planned, either. I
walked in there today, at Ares’ request, to actually talk to her in her capacity
of our family’s attorney—to have her give one last look at the contract sitting
on the passenger seat next to me.
I told myself it was fine. That despite what’s been going on—and on—
between us, we’re adults. And we’re capable of discussing normal, grownup
things without it devolving into carnal chaos fueled by pure, unbridled lust.
Or not.
Because the second I laid eyes on her when I walked into the Crown and
Black offices, that shit went right out the window. One. Fucking. Look at that
tight blonde bun, and her even tighter ass in that gray skirt, and I knew I had
to devour her whole.
I don’t do repeats. Ever. And yet somehow, unbelievably, I’ve been with her
seven times—four times at Club Venom, twice in my car, and once in her
office an hour ago.
Fuck. I have to stop thinking about any of this shit, or I’m going to miss my
meeting with Jayden and I won’t close this deal.
I inhale, switching my mind to that and away from the vivid thoughts of
watching Elsa’s pink, pretty pussy swallow my cock whole.
Jayden Robinson is the uncle of Lamar, the one I tore into at boxing the other
night, and the head of a relatively low-key Jamaican crime syndicate in
Queens. And the deal with him is one we’ve been hammering out for two
months. It’s also kind of a precursor, a trial run if you like, for the Albanian
acquisition. Even though we’re technically buying part of a criminal
operation from Jayden, like us, he’s got things hidden behind legit fronts.
And it’s those legit fronts that we’ll be purchasing through Thermopylae
Acquisitions, to the tune of three million dollars.
It’s not Albanian acquisition money, nor is it redeveloping the parking garage
at nine-fifty-two Lincoln Place money. But hey, three mil is still three mil.
And it’s a solid deal for both parties. Jayden gets to walk away from a
property he doesn’t really have the manpower to run, or even the interest in
keeping anymore. And we get another waterfront storage facility to run
things out of.
Finally. My dick has decided to sit down and be quiet. Thank you.
Seizing my opportunity, I grab the contract, jump out of the car, and walk
around to the back entrance of the store. The smell of oxtail, rundun, and
curried goat makes my stomach rumble as I knock on the back door.
A huge dude with dreads and a face like a mountain opens it a crack with a
icy look. But when he sees who I am, he nods, flashing a warm, welcoming
grin.
“I’m just fucking with you, man. He’s fine. Probably looking for a rematch.
But hey, come on in. You’re here for Mr. Robinson, yeah?”
Jayden’s big bodyguard chuckles. “It’s all business all day long in here today,
I guess.”
“Oh?”
Danny shrugs, leading me through the back of the market, past huge open
barrels of spices and curry leaves, and then up the stairs to Jayden’s office.
“Yeah, brother. The big guy’s got his boss-man hat on today, I’m telling you.
Didn’t even come out for lunch.. We had the Italians in here this morning, a
couple of mean-lookin’ Russians an hour ago, now you—”
Jayden’s family and mine go pretty far back. Our grandfathers did business
together here in New York, back in the day. But even so, there were
precautions in place when we first sat down to make this deal. Namely,
precautions to keep it quiet.
This was a good deal for both of us, and neither party wanted or needed
anyone else coming in and trying to fuck things up with a bidding war. Or
doing anything else that would put too much scrutiny on the deal, the
warehouse, or either of our shell companies involved in the process.
On Jayden’s side, he was nervous about the Haitians seeing the deal as sign
of weakness, or of him getting ready to step down as head of the
organization.
On our end? Well, Russians. Namely, the Reznikov Bratva. We didn’t want
them to even hear a whisper about this deal, because Gavan is a smart
motherfucker. And he’d see this for exactly what it is: a test run for
something bigger.
So, yeah. Damned straight I tense the fuck up when Danny mentions
Russians.
He shrugs. “I don’t know, man. I’m just security. But yeah, they were
Russian.” He frowns. “I think. Maybe Ukrainian? Or Polish?”
I relax a little. As much as I like Danny, it’s like he says: he isn’t exactly part
of the inner circle. Who knows who the hell Jayden was talking to earlier. It
could’ve been Lithuanian grain importers, for all I know.
At the door to the office, Danny knocks a staccato rhythm that I’m sure is
code. A little window slides open all the same, with dark eyes glaring out
before the face nods. The window shuts, the door unlocks, and then it swings
open.
“Good luck in there, brother,” Danny pats me on the back. “Oh, hey, you
didn’t bring any of that baklava again, did you?”
He grins as I turn and stride into the office and close the door behind me. I
nod at a couple of familiar faces around the room before I walk over to shake
Jayden’s hand. At sixty-five, he’s put on some pounds around his middle, and
his long dreads are gray. But he’s still a formidable guy.
Luckily, the Greeks and the Jamaicans have always gotten along pretty damn
well in this city.
“Big day, Jay,” I grin, plopping into a chair and dropping the contract on the
desk between us. “You ready to make this official and take my money?”
The room is completely quiet. And I’m suddenly aware that I’m the only
fucker smiling in here. Jayden frowns, clearing his throat.
“First of all,” he smiles awkwardly at me, “I want to thank you for the
interest in the property, Hades. I know our families go way back, and I
appreciate the way you worked out a deal that was good for both of us.”
He sighs. “Look, there’s no easy way to say this, but I wanted to tell you face
to face, like men.”
Fuck..
“Shit, Hades, I didn’t mean for this to happen. I said no at first. But he just
kept putting money on the table, brother. And at a certain point, it becomes
impossible to keep saying no.”
My jaw grinds.
“Who kept putting money on the table,” I growl.
Jayden sighs. “I’m sorry, Hades. I know this is going to look like a snub, and
I didn’t mean for it to be. It’s just business—”
“WHO.”
“Gavan Tsarenko.”
“He came in less than an hour ago, Hades. I never invited him, and I truly
don’t even know how he knew it was for sale. But he did, and the more I told
him it wasn’t for sale, the more he was telling me everything can be for sale
at the right price, and throwing more money on the table.”
Jayden looks legitimately sorry, and a little scared as he shrugs and raises his
arms in appeal. “I mean what was I supposed to do, brother? All respect to
you and your family, Hades, it’s the fuckin’ Russian Bratva.”
“How much.”
Fucking. Hell.
Jay nods.
“Which I got loud and clear, you hear what I’m saying?” Jayden mutters.
It was for me and my family. Tsarenko comes by with thirty men, and then
pays one hundred and thirty-three fucking percent over the current price?
Yeah, no. That wasn’t a bidding war. That was a shot across my family’s
fucking bow.
“It’s fine.”
I stand, cracking my neck before I reach over and shake Jay’s hand.
When Jay swallows nervously, I force a smile and pat his hand.
“Seriously, Jay, we’re good. Shit happens, you know? Like you said—it’s
just business.”
I’m guessing this was the other part of Gavan’s little surprise attack: to get us
pissed off at the Jamaicans for selling to him instead of us.
To divide us.
And that’s actually even more concerning than him buying a fucking
warehouse he doesn’t need just to “send a message”.
Which is why making sure Jay knows we’re cool is really, really important.
“Seriously, we’re good,” I smile at him. “Listen, my sister’s opening this new
bar in the West Village, and they’re doing this family and friends soft
opening in a few weeks. Why don’t you and Desmond swing by?”
“Stock up on the Red Stripe,” Desmond chuckles. “It’s all Uncle drinks.”
I grin through the darkness swirling inside of me. “I’ll see what I can do.”
“F UCK .”
Ares turns to stab his gaze through the big windows of the Thermopylae
Acquisitions conference room. I got our mother’s piercing icy-blue eyes.
Ares got our father’s dark, brooding ones.
I shake my head. “Positive. Never mind the history between our families,
we’ve always been a bit bigger and more powerful than him anyway—and
that was before we joined forces with the Kildares. No, he’s got too much
respect for our history, and too much appreciation for the power dynamic to
fuck that up.”
I nod. “Even that. Jay’s not an actor, man. And he looked scared as shit when
I walked in there. This was a shot across our bow, but it rattled Jay’s
windows too.”
Ares shakes his head. “This deal was locked the fuck down. I mean the only
people who knew were us, Neve’s family, and Jay’s crew. Maybe one of his
guys let it slip? Or, fuck, I mean I know Cillian and Castle just brought on
some new blood. Maybe—”
I nod.
“Yep.”
His jaw clenches. “In war or politics, those are both moves you make on your
enemies before you invade…”
“We need to find out how the Russians knew about this deal, Hades. And we
need to find out yesterday.”
21
ELSA
I’ve literally re-read it close to a hundred times. And it has not lost its edge
yet.
I still tingle every time I read it. Still feel my pulse quicken, still squeeze my
thighs together at my desk.
Still squirmy, achy, and needy. I mean, what the fuck, self?
All I feel when I think about it is the need for more, like an addiction.
I mean, sweet JESUS. This is what I’m dealing with. How do you even
respond to that? And why the hell does it turn me on so much when he talks
to me like this?
I roll my eyes. I can almost feel his possessive glare through the phone.
ME
Oh, no, I did a ton of that. Dick all night. The whole rugby team,
actually. Choo-choo!
Heat explodes in my core. My pulse begins to beat even faster, and I start to
shiver. Goddammit, there’s something insanely sexy about this ridiculously
over-the-top caveman routine, even though there’s no way I would have ever
found this even a mild turn-on in anyone else.
But…that’s Hades.
There’s no “lol” at the end of that statement. No funny gif. No cute emoji.
It’s not a joke. He’s legitimately that insane, and dangerous, and more than
capable of doing that. And apparently, I’m far more than capable of getting
wetter than rain when he says shit like that.
ME
You’d seriously kill someone for touching me?
HADES
yes
ME
That’s ALL?? Just for touching me?
HADES
Does there need to be any other reason
I stare at the screen, eyes bugging out of my face, my mouth hanging open.
Maybe there really is something off with Hades. Maybe he’s even more of a
psycho—like, legitimately so—than I’ve ever guessed. But if he is, then
there’s a strong chance, given how much this whole act is turning me on, that
I am, too.
HADES
and you’re deflecting. we were talking about your ass missing
me
I blush fiercely.
ME
No, YOU were talking about that.
HADES
yet again, deflection instead of an honest answer.
ME
Too bad.
HADES
answer me or I’ll come over there and ask it myself and this
time I’ll leave the fucking door open
Fuck. My entire body clenches and squirms. My skin feels electric under my
clothes. What the hell has this man done to me?
ME
Fine. No, it does not.
HADES
I said an HONEST answer
I flush deeply.
HADES
you’re too busy being this buttoned up good girl to admit you
came like a fucking geyser with my tongue in your ass, aren’t
you
ME
Who even talks like this?
HADES
me, obviously
in any case I’m glad she misses me
ME
Who?
Holy. Shit.
ME
Meaning?
HADES
you know what I mean, kitten
ME
I might need clarification.
Three dots appear and then disappear. And then suddenly, a picture just pops
right up on my screen that sucks the air from my lungs and sends my jaw
crashing to the fucking floor.
His cock.
…and the icing on the cake is my stolen thong wrapped around the base of it.
…Unless, apparently, that unsolicited dick pic comes from Hades Drakos.
Because when his gorgeous cock fills my screen, all I want to do is freaking
lick it. All over.
I shiver.
ME
When did you take that?
HADES
just now
ME
Are you at home?
HADES
I’m sitting in traffic, why
Oh my God, he’s an animal. He just took a picture of his massive dick with
my panties wrapped around it in midtown traffic. Like, who does that?
And also…
My eyes slide over the image, heat spreading through every single nook and
cranny of my body. My nipples feeling electrified against my bra. My clit
aching to be touched under my slick panties.
Hades has a freaking beautiful dick. Like, that thing is the Brad Pitt or
Benicio del Toro of dicks. It’s ridiculous.
It’s also huge. Like the sort of huge where I’m actually confused how it fit
inside my vagina. And that’s built for delivering babies, for fuck’s sake.
ME
I feel that I need to set some expectations.
HADES
concerning
ME
Concerning my ass.
HADES
please elaborate
ME
As it pertains to your penis.
I blush.
ME
There’s no way your cock is going in there.
HADES
that’s factually incorrect
I grin.
ME
I’m being serious. It isn’t physically possible.
HADES
what makes you so sure
I scroll up to the picture in the middle of our conversation, screenshot it, and
then text him the screenshot.
ME
Uuuuhh…because your dick is the size of a baseball bat??!
HADES
you don’t have to win me over with flattery, baby. I’m what they
call a sure thing
I’ve never done that. I mean, obviously I’ve never sent someone a picture like
that.
But apparently, this man is able to unlock each and every first of mine he
wants. Because before I know what I’m doing, before I can stop myself, I’m
lowering my phone under the desk and slowly spreading my legs.
Click.
I wince. The first shot is…not sexy. Blurred, badly lit, and basically of my
thigh. Yeah, no thanks. I try a few more, but it’s the same result. Finally,
realizing it’s the lack of light under the desk, and after finding out the hard
way that flash photography of your crotch is about the least sexy thing ever, I
get up and move to the small sitting area by my windows.
I try a few more angles in there, before I finally just say screw it and drop my
panties. Blushing, I lie back on the sofa, legs spread and my skirt bunched up
as I bring the camera lens to my privates.
The first few are meh. But then…there it is. The money shot, where you can
actually see the glistening heat of my arousal and the pink flush on my lips.
I don’t second guess it. Don’t overthink it. I just hit send, and then
immediately turn my phone face down as my face heats.
I swallow. It’s fine. It’s not like my face is in it. And as insane as he is, I feel
that Hades is the last person who’d ever share something like that, given his
lunatic possessive streak.
ME
I hope that suffices. I’m going to work now.
HADES
keep the panties off when you do
ME
Lol, no way.
HADES
it wasn’t a request. do not put them back on
I open my photo app and delete all the pictures I just took of my pussy,
because yikes, I do not need those popping up in a meeting or something.
Then, I pluck my panties off the couch. I’m about to slip them back on,
because honestly, why not? But then, heat surging into my face, I walk back
over to my desk and slip them deep into my bag instead.
When I sit, I feel a shiver of desire tingle up from between my legs all the
way up to my cheeks.
I’m about to ask what that even means when another picture comes through.
A picture of Hades’ swollen cock, my panties still wrapped around the thick
base, with sticky, glistening white cum dripping down every magnificent inch
of him and pooling in my thong.
It’s quite possibly the sexiest thing I’ve ever laid eyes on.
HADES
have fun, kitten
I’ve barely closed the bathroom door behind me before I’m leaning against
the sink with one hand under my skirt and the other muffling my strangled
cries.
22
ELSA
“Come in.”
When I look up and see Neve, Eilish, and Callie walk in, I grin.
“Hey!”
Neve makes a face, nodding at the legal briefings spread out across my desk.
“Shit, sorry, are you in the middle of something?”
Eilish holds up a file folder. “Final liquor licensing and fire code stuff. They
just need your once-over and a signature, and then they can forever be locked
in the safe at The Banshee.”
I smile at the three of them. “You guys getting excited for this?”
Callie beams. “Uh, hell yes. You’re coming to the soft opening, yeah?”
“Of course!”
I find myself almost unable to look Callie in the eye, since I spent close to an
hour of my day earlier vividly sexting her brother. Which, given her and my
friendship, I feel kind of weird about now.
I take the file folder and leaf through it. “I can get these back to you guys
later tonight, if you like?”
Neve shakes her head of red hair. “It totally does not have to be tonight.”
She shrugs. “Would you just be able to drop it off at the Banshee itself? You
know the safe combo, right?”
Eilish makes a face. “You sure? We’re not looking to make more work for
you.”
“Thank you,” she sighs. “It would be a huge help, if you really don’t mind.
I’ve got a late class tonight, Neve’s got some function dealio with Ares, and
Callie…” she turns to eye Hades’ sister, who makes a face.
Being that her fiancé is a fifty-year-old, grotesque and notoriously vile Italian
Mafia don from Los Angeles…ouch.
“Well, I’m happy to drop it off and stick it in the office safe.”
“Thanks, Elsa,” Eilish grins. “Oh! Before I forget, we changed the keypad
lock on the back door. It’s seven-nine-nine-two-zero-five now.”
“Oh, and also?” Neve holds up a finger. “This is off the topic of the Banshee,
but do you have the easement filings for the fourteenth street development?
Ares asked if I could grab those from you if I swung by here.”
“Yeah, not a problem.” I cross back to my desk and open my email. “There’s
a bunch of different documents, hang on. I’m going to email you…these
ones…” I frown and then glance at her. “Actually, I know the last two are
saved as PDFs on my phone. Feel free to grab it and email them to yourself.”
“Yeah?”
“Yeah, it’s right there.” I smile, nodding my chin at my phone sitting on the
corner of the desk. “Password is eleven-nineteen-twenty-three.”
“Awesome, thanks.”
“It’s probably in my recent photos. Hang on, I’m sending you the first five
docs—”
Neve almost drops my phone as she quickly places it face down on my desk
and all but leaps back from it.
I turn the color of ripe strawberries as it hits me. I actually gag, like I’m going
to actually throw up right here on my office floor, but manage to stop myself.
Callie grins as she makes a beeline for the phone. “Whoa. Okay, whatever
this is, I have got to see—”
Neve, mercifully, gets to it first, slamming her hand down over it before
Callie can snatch it up and be forever scarred.
Eilish grins at me. “Is Ms. Elsa Guin sexting with someone?”
“Guys, it’s none of our business, okay?” Neve shoots the other two a look.
“So, can we just leave it?”
“Same, actually,” Eilish nods. “Gotta get to class.” She turns to Callie. “You
heading uptown? Castle’s downstairs. We can give you a ride.”
“Perfect, thanks.”
Neve clears her throat. “I actually have to go over some other contract stuff
with Elsa.” She turns to eye me warily. “If you’ve got a sec?”
I manage a weak wave at Callie and Eilish. When they’re gone, I drag my
eyes to Neve, mortified.
“I am so sorry—”
She shakes her head. “It’s your phone. I’m sorry I pried.”
“What?!” I sputter.
I stare at her, my face on fire. “You can tell based off of….” I swallow.
“That?” I croak.
I keep staring at her, stunned. A second later she breaks, cracking up and
grinning at me.
“I’m completely joking. I saw his contact name at the top of the screenshot.”
The air whooshes out of my lungs as I catch myself on the edge of my desk.
“Relax. I mean, I saw a quarter second of a dick and then I looked away.
Believe me, I’ve retained nothing.”
I simmer, chewing on my lip. “Well, aside from the knowledge that
I’m…yeah. With Hades.”
“Aside from that…yeah.” She grins at me. “I did not have that on my Bingo
card, not gonna lie.”
“Is it…” she frowns, like she’s hunting for the right word.
She chuckles. “That’s not what was I going to ask, and that’s none of my
business anyway. No, I was trying to find a tactful way of asking if he was
pressuring you into doing anything or being too…well, Hades.”
“I just mean—and please don’t take offense to this, but you’re not really…”
“His type?”
She winces, making a face. “No! Well, yeah, but that sounds like a put down
when I’m trying to play you up and shit on his usual terrible taste in women.
And I might be totally wrong about this, and if I am, please tell me, but
you’ve never struck me as much of a dating type. That’s all.”
“Complicated.”
“Very.”
“I’d ask if you’re having fun, but I’m going to assume from that goofy-ass
grin on your face that that’s a yes.”
“No.”
“That I saw a picture of his brother’s boner? Uh, no, Elsa. I like living on a
planet that hasn’t been blown apart by a nuclear firestorm.”
I snort a laugh.
“No, for real, I’m not. This is between you and Hades.” She peers at me. “He
is treating you well, though, right?”
Well, that’s only maybe ten percent true, but who’s keeping score.
“Good. But for real, can we agree to literally never tell Ares that I caught
even a millisecond glimpse of his brother’s genitals? Actually, please can I
ask you never to tell Hades, either?” She frowns. “Look, could we just
collectively agree to forget any of this ever happened, and tell no one about
it, ever?”
“Hey, Neve?”
She stops at the door, turning to look back at me. “Yeah?”
“That’s, uh…” I clear my throat uneasily. “That’s the only picture you saw…
Right?”
I exhale slowly.
“Just, you know, let me know who your bikini waxer is sometime.”
Oh my fucking GOD.
H OURS LATER , though not nearly as late as I’ve had to stay sometimes, I’m
finally leaving. I grab my gym bag off the couch in my office, lock up, and
grab an Uber home.
When I get there, I frown when I see the food delivery I sent to Nora a couple
of hours ago still sitting on the kitchen counter. One, because I seriously need
to start finding the time to make my sister actual home-cooked meals instead
of feeding her nothing but takeout. But two, I sent it hours ago, and it’s still
unopened.
“Nora?”
She’s not in the living room when I poke my head in there. I check her room
next, knocking lightly on the closed door.
“Hey! I’m home. How was your day? Also, you must be starving! The Italian
I sent—” I frown. “Nora?”
I creak the door open. She’s not there.
Pulling my phone out, I send her a quick text. I’m not super hardcore about a
curfew, or about where she can or can’t go. She’s fifteen, she’s a smart kid,
and it’s New York. As long as she lets me know where she’s going to be, and
that everything is okay, she’s got a lot of freedom.
ME
Hey, just checking in. You good?
She was obviously home earlier after school when I had the food delivered,
since it’s sitting on our kitchen counter. But I guess something came up with
her friends. I hate making light of her teen drama, because I was that age
once too. But sometimes, it’s hard not to roll my eyes at the latest earth-
shattering catastrophe that usually revolves around literally nothing.
In the kitchen, I realize I’m starving. So I open up the takeout bag and pop
some of the cavatelli with spicy sausage and broccolini in the microwave. I’m
halfway through devouring it, along with a big glass of pinot noir, when the
unit phone buzzes with a call from the front desk down in the lobby.
“Hey, Gerry.”
“Nnno, I don’t think so. Big black box with a ribbon, and the courier said he
was paid not to say who it came from.”
Okay…that’s weird.
I grin. Whatever the package is, I think this explains where it came from.
“Ms. Guin?”
Ten minutes later, I’m back upstairs sitting in my living room, staring at the
matte black box tied with a black satin ribbon and bow sitting on my coffee
table. There’s no note or anything, but I grin at the sweet gesture from
Taylor.
ME
Hey Taylor, thank you so much, and my absolute pleasure. I’m
so happy at Crown and Black. It’s everything I’ve ever looked
for in a firm for the long-term. Thank you, really. Your feedback
means a lot to me.
Taylor’s a stickler for her bedtime routine and sleep health, so she’s already
got her “do not disturb” auto reply set for texts. But still, she’ll see it in the
morning and know I got the package.
I re-read her text again, my smile growing wider. I love working for her, and
Alistair and Gabriel. It’s a wonderful chance at a fresh start, away from Leo,
and the less fun memories of childhood, and from Hugo the stalker creep. So
it really is incredibly validating to hear that they’re glad I’m here, too.
I take a big slug of my pinot noir and then pull open the ribbon tied around
the box. I take off the lid, smiling curiously at the matte black crepe paper
inside, before I pull it aside—
I am fairly confident this is not a gift from Taylor. And if it is, I have, well,
several questions. Because it’s not a bottle of wine, or a fruit basket, or a
laser-etched Lucite plaque, or something else your boss would send you for a
job well done.
Inside the box, I’m staring at the most erotic and provocative, skimpiest
lingerie I’ve ever laid eyes on, bar none.
My mouth falls open, my cheeks burning as I stare at the contents. The demi-
bra is transparent black lace, with just enough fabric to basically—sort of—
cup the undersides of your breasts without really covering much of anything.
I start to pull the matching panties out—in the same delicate, black, see-
through lace as the bra—before I stop, my eyes going wide.
There’s skimpy, and then there’s, well, this. It’s like a thong, but…not really.
The front is about two inches wide, leading down to the gusset, which I
realize as I hold them up actually splits apart.
The back is even flimsier. After the lace in the front splits into two, to not at
all cover your vagina, it comes up the back over the ass in two strips, one
over each cheek, to where they connect with the delicate waistband again.
That’s it.
The box also contains lacy black thigh-highs with a matching black lace
garter belt.
So, no—this is pretty obviously not from Taylor. And it doesn’t take much of
a genius to figure out who did send it.
Hades, clearly.
Then I realize there’s something else in the box. Two something elses,
actually, both in smallish black satin boxes. I pick up the first, without the
faintest idea what it could be as I open it.
It’s a vibrator. A little, shiny, gold vibrator. The kind that’s in a sort of “U”
shape, where you slide one end up and inside, and the other end hugs the
front against your clit.
Which seriously begs the question: what the fuck is in the other box?
Handcuffs? A freaking ball gag?
I simmer with forbidden heat as I lift open the lid of the second box.
Immediately, something hot pulses and sizzles in the pit of my stomach as
stare at the little bulbous toy sitting inside the box, also gold.
Swallowing, I place the plug back in the box, which I set down on the coffee
table. I breathe deeply as I let my eyes drink it all in.
I’ve never owned anything like this. Never worn anything even close to this.
And certainly never been given anything like this, by anyone.
I roll my eyes.
ME
I know what it IS. I mean what is all of this as it pertains to me.
Or to you?
HADES
it’s what you’ll be wearing the next time I see you
I snort.
ME
You wish.
HADES
I don’t wish. I demand. and you obey
He’s seriously un-fucking-believable. Real humans do not talk like this. And
yet, here I am, grinning and blushing like a schoolgirl with a crush, playing
his game.
Very, very willingly.
But just as I’m typing out a cheeky reply, the door to the apartment suddenly
slams open.
Fuck.
Outside my room, I hear Nora slamming the door to her own room shut.
Shit.
“Nora?”
“Come in.”
Fear and worry stab into me at the soft, utterly broken tone of my sister’s
voice. I quickly push the door open.
“Nora?”
Oh, fuck.
I sit on the bed next to her and wrap her in my arms as she cries her heart out.
“Hey, it’s okay! Shh, it’s okay. I’m here. I’m here.”
“Do you want to talk about it? Did something happen with someone at
school?”
She shakes her head, then twists, lifting her eyes, blurry with tears, to mine.
“Some kids from school got jumped tonight.”
Holy shit.
“It’s why I ran over to Gemma’s house. At first we all thought they’d been in
a fight. But it’s a lot worse than that.”
“Oh my God, Nora.” My face falls as I hug her tightly. “What happened?
Who got hurt?”
“Hey,” I smile, lifting her face to mine. “You can tell me anything. You
know that.”
The two boys who were over here smoking pot that day Hades drove me
home.
“Two other guys, too, Evan Chan and Kyle McMasters. But Nick and Theo
got the worst of it.”
Nora shudders, choking back a sob. “They’re both in the hospital. Nick has a
broken arm, broken leg, and a fractured eye socket.”
Jesus fucking Christ.
He may be one of the little shits who tried to get my fifteen-year-old sister
high, and that damn well better have been the extent of his plans for that
evening. But still, he’s just a kid.
Nora’s face pales. “Theo got it even worse. I guess they knocked him out,
then doused him with vodka and lit him on fire.”
Holy shit.
“Oh my God, Nora, I’m so sorry.” I squeeze her tightly. “Did they catch the
guys who did it?”
She shakes her head miserably. “No.” She suddenly shivers violently.
“They’re still out there. Elsa, what if they’re targeting kids from St. Mark’s
Academy?”
I shake my head quickly, pulling her tighter to me. “No, Nora. No. Nobody is
targeting anyone. It’s horrible and senseless, but I’m sure it was just a
random act of violence. I mean they’re all wealthy enough kids, from families
with money. Maybe these guys who jumped them saw four teenagers with
fancy watches and figured they were easy targets?”
“But why hurt them so badly? Elsa, Theo is in really bad shape. And Nick’s
going to lose his spot on the Cornell hockey team next year.” She shudders
and tears up again. “Why the fuck did they have to hurt them like that?!”
I shake my head, rocking her. “I don’t know, Nora,” I murmur quietly. “But
I’m sure it was just senseless, random violence.”
She doesn’t need to know that both Theo’s and Nick’s fathers work for the
Drakos family. She also doesn’t need to dwell on the idea that being doused
with vodka and lit on fucking fire is a pretty cut and dried Bratva message.
She also really doesn’t need to know that suddenly I’m worried that
something very, very bad is looming on the horizon.
23
HADES
I mean smashing someone’s nose in or lighting their car on fire doesn’t really
come with a casual Friday dress code or mandatory holiday party.
Since we’ve returned, the full-time occupancy has dropped. Ares and Neve
are in their glass and steel loft over on the west side. I’ve got my place in
Brooklyn, though I do keep a room at the main house. And Deimos is in
London, obviously. Which leaves Callie, Kratos, and of course Ya-ya, who
never left at all.
It’s a comically large house for just three people. But it works for them. And I
do love catching up on my work here, especially when I can set up shop
outside, like today. Even if that work entails answering emails, which is
arguably my least favorite thing in the world to do.
Who the fuck still even sends emails? I barely ever check mine. We all have
smartphones. Why are we not just texting? Email is all just digital junk mail
these days anyway.
But, as I am doing my least favorite activity, I’m also taking breaks roughly
every two minutes to check my phone.
Because, also obviously, I have somehow turned into one of those incredibly
lame, simpering guys who checks his phone every ninety-eight seconds to see
if the girl he likes has texted him.
But it’s been a quiet few day on the Elsa front, since the night I sent her the
lingerie and the toys. I’m actually regretting sending those, because it seems
to have shut her right the fuck up.
She went completely offline that night without really ending our text
conversation, which is unusual for her. She gave me some bullshit excuse the
next day about her sister needing her or something. But even after that, it’s
been a few days without much of anything besides the odd message here and
there.
I can tell myself all I like that she’s busy, and married to her job, and all that
shit. Or that Crown and Black has a giant gala event for their high-roller
clients tomorrow night, that’s probably eating up a bunch of her time.
But still…
I glance at the phone for the umpteenth time.
Still nothing.
I turn, nodding at Ares as he walks across the garden to where I’m sitting at
the outdoor dining table. He drops into a chair across from me and drums his
fingers on the top of the table.
“What can I say, Ares, I’m just livin’ that vagabond life. Midtown, Brooklyn,
Little Odessa, K-town. The world is my oyster. Who knows where I’ll end up
next?”
“Shoot.”
“Ruh-row, Shaggy.”
He gives me his signature big brother Ares “stop fucking around” look. I shut
my mouth.
Shit.
“C’mon, man. Don’t make me wade through the bullshit. I know you’re
seeing her.”
“I’m not seeing her—”
“Hades…”
I scowl at his scolding tone. “And what if I am, anyway? It’s none of your
concern or business.”
“Actually, it literally is. Because you know we’ve been trying to get her to
come work for the family full-time. And because you’re you, Hades…”
My lips curl.
“…and this is one woman I cannot have running off or losing her shit
because you fuck her over or make promises you’re never going to keep.”
“I’m not trying to be an asshole here, brother,” he growls. “I’m really, really
not. But even now, as our person at Crown and Black, she’s an important part
of our business, and you’re—”
“Fuck. You.” I hiss. “You know why I’m the way I am.”
Ares looks away, his jaw tight and his face grim.
“I know, man,” he finally says quietly, turning back. He reaches across the
table, gripping my shoulder firmly as he nods. “Look, I’m sorry. I’m not
trying to imply that you’re this—”
“Man-whore who’s obviously just only ever thinking with his dick and who
will obviously do anything, maybe ruin everything, just to get laid?”
“Well, let me simplify it, then, since it’s obvious neither of you have thought
this through.”
“Ares, so help me God, if you try and ‘dad’ me right now, I’ll fucking snap.”
“I’m not trying to dad anyone,” he barks. “I’m trying to help you.”
He rolls his eyes. “Man, have you even thought about how badly this could
blow up in her face? She’s worked her ass off her entire life to get this
position.”
“And?”
“And she’s in a professional relationship with our family. Are you even
aware that you sleeping with her creates a massive ethics violation?”
I’m silent.
Fuck.
Not when she’s under my fucking skin and haunting my every waking
moment like a fucking addiction.
“Hades—”
“You know what, man?” I stand. “The office has been a real grind today. So
I’m taking a lunch.”
He exhales, shoving his fingers through his hair. “Look, I’m sorry. I’m just
—”
“Do us both a favor and stay the absolute fuck out of my personal life. Case
closed. Okay?”
“Serj Mirzoyan’s reached out with a personal ask. He floated the idea of you
taking Vanya as your date to the Crown and Black gala tomorrow night.”
I sigh. “But it’s a request from Serj, and if he says jump and we ask how
high, that puts us in a good position to close this deal before Gavan can
muscle in on it.”
I grit my teeth.
He sighs again. “I know. And I don’t enjoy asking you to do this. But…” he
shrugs. “All Serj is asking for is for you to wine and dine his daughter a bit
and play nice with him. I think it might help us. A lot, actually.”
“Don’t worry about it,” I mutter before I turn back to him. “And you did
enjoy asking me to do this, didn’t you, asshole?”
“A HH , M R . D RAKOS .”
Serj Mirzoyan hauls himself to his feet from the couch in the office of his
lavish Bronx mansion, grinning at me.
The gruff-looking man in the suit who led me here from the front door nods
at his boss, and closes the door to the office on his way out.
Serj is a big, bruiser type—the kind of guy who built his empire out of
brutality and by chopping hands off his enemies. And it shows. He’s got the
cauliflower ears of a street fighter, the scarred face of a man who’s gone to
war a couple of times, and the wealth and power of a man who’s not only
won those wars but crushed his enemies.
All that said, he’s extremely charming. At least, right now he is. I’ve only
met him maybe once before, just in passing, so I have no idea. But I have the
feeling I’m getting a little bit of a red carpet rolled out for me.
“A drink, yes?”
“That would be great, thank you, Mr. Mirzoyan.”
He glances over his shoulder at me from the bar cart. “I would very much
like that, Mr. Drakos.”
Yeah… If he’s pouring traditional Greek ouzo for me, he’s rolling out the red
carpet. And I’m suddenly wondering if maybe Gavan’s gotten bored of this
ongoing battle over Serj’s empire and has backed off. It would certainly
explain Serj cuddling up to me.
“Gëzuar.”
We drink, and he nods. “To a wonderful future, and to burying whatever bad
blood there was between our families. It lies in the past, yes?”
Maybe Serj really is over the fact that my father killed his, something like
thirty years ago. Maybe he’s not. Either way, money talks.
“I know things have dragged on perhaps a little longer than you would have
liked with your family’s purchase of my business. But I need to do what is
best for my children and their future. This, I hope you can understand.”
“You want to get the most money possible, of course.” I grin. “Yes, I can
completely understand that. Money doesn’t buy happiness, but it sure covers
up a lot of bullshit.”
Serj chuckles, clinking his glass to mine. “Exactly. I was just telling my good
friend—”
The door to the study bangs open loudly. When I turn, I cock a brow as I lay
eyes on Melik, Serj’s douchebag of a son.
I resist the urge to roll my eyes. I mean, yes, as I understand it, Serj’s
decision to sell his empire rather than pass it down to his kids hasn’t gone
over so well with either of them. But this isn’t just Melik being pissed about
that. He’s always this much of a prick.
I know Melik and Vanya from Harvard—Melik was in my grade, and Vanya
was two years younger. Their father is an immigrant with lots of money, so
of course, he sent them to the flashiest, most prestigious school he could.
Vanya actually managed to graduate. Melik got kicked out for literally never
going to class. And assaulting a professor. And driving his G-wagon into the
side of an administration building while he was drunk. And selling coke.
And…well, just basically being a trust fund douchebag pretending to be
gangster.
He’s somehow both a coward and a hothead, and Serj is wise to sell his
empire rather than leave it to him. If he thinks his empire would last two
weeks under Melik’s guidance, he’s being generous.
I mean the dude put out a rap album three years ago under the name “Pussy
Slayer”, without a shred of irony or satire involved. That tells you everything
you need to know about Melik Mirzoyan right fucking there.
“Hesht!” Serj snaps at his son, glaring at him. “He is our guest, Melik.”
Right. Right. There’s also the fun little fact that Melik is a raging neo-Nazi
fuckwad. So that’s a nice cherry on top of the whole steaming pile of shit that
he already is.
“We’ve talked about this, Melik,” Serj chides his son. “The Drakos family
has made a generous offer—”
“Melik!”
Even I flinch at the booming sound of Serj dropping his “civilized rich guy
with the big house” act and revealing the street-brawler hiding underneath.
“He’s upset about the direction I’ve chosen to go. Please, forgive him.”
“I’m sure there are plenty of other fish in the sea for a man like Melik.”
The older Mirzoyan pointedly clears his throat. “Yes, well. Anyway, I wanted
you to come here today, because I wanted to ask a favor of you.”
He nods. “The Crown and Black gala tomorrow evening. I do some business
with Gabriel Black, and as such, I’ve received an invitation. Unfortunately, I
have a work engagement. But it would break my daughter’s heart not to go.
She so loves these things.”
“Would you do me the honor of taking her as your date? She’d be over the
moon to walk in there on your arm, my friend.”
Back then, the image I had of Vanya Mirzoyan was that of a fairly vapid,
hard-partying trust fund mob-princess type. I sort of remember her trying to
get with me a few times, and me saying no every time.
But I absolutely remember the time she cornered me, when I was too drunk to
say no, even if every cell in my body was screaming it.
I don’t get drunk out of my mind and have sex, because I fucking despise it.
It brings back all of those dark memories from when I was younger.
I was beyond wasted the night Vanya shoved me into a dark bedroom at a
party and tried to blow me. I was so drunk and so petrified by the flashbacks
that I sort of lay back and just let it happen until I simply couldn’t take it
anymore. I finally bolted from the room, and we’ve never spoken since.
So, no, escorting her to a fucking gala isn’t exactly high on my wish list.
But the other reason, for reasons I’m not sure I’m even ready to think about,
is that Elsa will be there too. She’ll be there, and she’ll watch me walk in
with some other woman.
But I’m stuck. I can’t actually say no to Serj. Because this “favor” is clearly
part of our deal. And there’s way too much money on the table for me to let
my own shit get in the way of my family’s success.
“Excellent, my friend. Excellent. She’s here right now, actually. Would you
like to talk details about tomorrow? Maybe you could coordinate your tie to
her dress or something. I don’t know how these things work.”
Nope. Serj marches right past me, flings open the door, and bellows.
“VANYA!”
He turns to smile at me. I hear the sound of heels clicking on marble floors as
she approaches, and suddenly, Serj’s daughter walks in, dark hair billowing
around her like a villain’s cloak. She gives me a polished, practiced smile.
“Likewise,” I mutter.
Serj beams. “Well, I’ll let you two discuss. Hades, my thanks again.”
I nod as he steps out and closes the door. Then, we’re alone.
Vanya sighs, her shoulders relaxing a hair as she wanders over to the bar cart
and pours herself a vodka.
“So, it looks like you’re my date for tomorrow,” she says dryly.
“Great,” I growl.
She sighs, cocking her hip as she eyes me. “Look, I know you don’t like me
very much, Hades.”
She shrugs. “I…actually have wondered that. I thought we got along okay
back at school, you know? I’ve always assumed it’s because I wouldn’t fuck
you.”
“Nnn…o?”
I laugh coldly. “You have no idea why I might not be your biggest fan.”
“I genuinely don’t. But I also don’t care that much, Hades, so it’s okay. We
can go to this dumb gala thing tomorrow because my father is insisting that I
go—and I’m guessing he’s holding your deal over your head to make you go
as well. So, we can go, get drunk, not talk to each other, and call it a night.
Sound good?”
“You seriously don’t remember what happened at that frat party at the Sigma
house. Your freshman year, my junior one.”
“Hades, that was like nine years ago. I really don’t, sorry.”
“You were wearing a Cleopatra costume, with a gold mask,” I hiss. “I was
drunk, Vanya. Very drunk. And you used that to—”
“It’s…not?” She frowns. “Why would I lie about that? And what exactly do
you think happened between us, anyway?”
“You found me so fucking drunk I could barely see straight, shoved me into a
room, and tried to suck my dick even though I was telling you to fucking
stop,” I snap. “And don’t give me that fucking ‘a guy can’t say no’ bullshit,”
I hiss. “Because I fucking did.”
I glare at her.
“I was in Ibiza, Hades. I’m really, truly sorry that someone did that to you.
It’s awful.” Her face darkens as she looks away. “I woke up to a guy trying to
put his hand down my pants in the basement of a party once, my senior year.”
Her eyes raise to mine. “I mean, if you ever want to talk about it—”
My blood is roaring in my ears. “It was you. I know it was you, Vanya. You
wore a Cleopatra—”
“Whitney Gerrard. She was in my dorm freshman year. Dark hair, and her
mother is Albanian, so we have a similar complexion.” She blinks, shaking
her head. “She wore a Cleopatra costume that Halloween. Definitely. And she
told everyone you two were dating for like a month after. I remember
distinctly, because she had these Polaroids of the two of you hugging at that
party tacked up on her dorm door. You both looked pretty wasted.”
Fuck.
“Here.”
She hands me a glass of whiskey. I mumble a thanks and knock it back in one
gulp.
“I’m so sorry, Hades. Oh my God, fuck Whitney. What an utter piece of shit.”
I nod.
“Mostly.” I smile wryly. “That, and I kind of always thought of you as this
trust fund mob-princess brat.”
“But I’ve accepted that. Melik is all bent out of shape about this deal. But,
please…” she rolls her eyes. “I mean, he can’t unclog a toilet without calling
for help. There’s no chance he could lead our father’s empire. He’s just
power hungry. That’s why he’s pissed.”
I frown. “I was under the impression both of you were upset about the sale.”
She snorts. “Me? No. No, Hades, I just want the cash, not power, not an
empire. I just want to spend the rest of my life on a beach somewhere, where
women who look like Gal Gadot dressed as Wonder Woman reapply my
sunblock and keep my wine glass topped up.”
“That was my awkward way of telling you I’ve realized I’m gay, by the way.
Something my father refuses to acknowledge, hence you being my date for
tomorrow.”
She shrugs. “Because you told me something I’m guessing you don’t tell
many people. It seemed fair.”
Today is one hundred percent not going as I expected it would. And I’m very
okay with that.
“I don’t suppose I can sweeten the pot at all to get you to help me push this
deal through?”
“You don’t have to sweeten anything. I’m already pushing for it. And my dad
—”
Shit.
I wrap a platonic arm around Vanya’s shoulders, giving her support as she
sniffs back the tears and dabs at her face.
“I’m so sorry, I don’t know where that came from. I… I’m sorry.”
“I…” she looks down. “No, actually.” She chokes out another sob as she
raises red, puffy eyes to mine. “He’s got cancer, Hades. My dad, I mean. He
just found out recently that it’s terminal.”
“Thanks,” she sniffs. “I’m still trying to wrap my head around it. But…that’s
mainly why he’s doing all this. He doesn’t have a lot of time, Hades. I don’t
want the empire, and Melik would be a disaster if he got it. So that’s why
Dad’s burying the past between our families and making this deal.”
Christ. I kind of feel a little guilty now, knowing how much one of the
properties we’re about to purchase from Serj is actually going to be worth
someday. But it is what it is. Vanya and her brother will get a massive
payout. And he’ll be dead anyway.
Vanya’s face twists as she looks up at me. “I shouldn’t have said that. Please
—”
“I’m not going to use your dad being sick as a negotiating tactic, Vanya,” I
growl quietly.
“Thank you.”
“Of course.”
But thank you for confirming that Gavan is also after your father’s empire.
25
ELSA
“What?”
“Says who?”
She smirks, holding up the tablet in her hand. “Says the RSVP list.”
“Oh.” I shrug. “Nah. I was going to bring Nora, but she made plans with her
friends instead and ditched me.”
“Brutal.”
“The number of wieners I’ve been shown without asking to see them is a
legitimately terrifying commentary on the state of the world. Like, who does
that? Hi, what do you do for work? What do you like to eat? Anyway, here’s
a photo of my not-very-impressive worm of a dick. Can we fuck now?”
“Elsa, it’s brutal out there, I’m telling you. I mean, I could kind of wrap my
head around it if you had a nice-looking dick, right? I mean if you’ve got a
supermodel cock? I mean, sure, probably still ask first. But if it’s that nice?
Yeah, maybe I’m down to take a peek, you know?”
I’m cracking up. First, because Fumi is fucking hilarious. And second,
because laughing covers the sudden redness suffusing my face, since I’m
now thinking very hard about the dick pictures Hades sent me the other day.
“But holy shit. Please spare me those badly-lit, blurry shots of your micro-
dicks. And why the fuck is there always a toilet in the background? I mean if
I’m taking pictures of my pussy, that shit is going to be glamour city, not
taken in some fucking toilet. Like, have a little respect for your privates,
right?”
That knocks the laughter right out of me. I stiffen and stare at her.
“Excuse me?”
“Yeah, I’ve got clients too, girl. Even a few that are almost as criminally hot
as Hades. But I’m not the one getting dragged off to my office by any of them
to get fucked silly for an hour in the middle of the workday.”
“You do understand that I’m not a fucking idiot, right? Like, you know that?”
I give her a wry smile as I finally force myself to look her in the eye. Fumi
arches her brows, sighing.
“No.”
“But…”
“Gotcha. Which is why you definitely are not”—she uses her fingers to make
air quotes—“hooking up with Hades Drakos.”
“Fumiii—”
“Elsaaa.”
I roll my eyes. She laughs, then sighs. “I’m not going to say a word, relax.
Plus, trust me. There are way more egregious breaches of counsel-client
entanglements going on in this place than you and Hades.”
She drags a finger across her lips. “Ah-ah-ah. Steel trap. I say nothing.”
I grin.
“So: Hades.”
“I’m just saying, if someone had to send me a dick pic, solicited or otherwise,
and that person was Hades Drakos, I’m not sure I’d complain that much.”
Fumi giggles, waggling her brows at me. “Oh, it’s like that, is it?”
“Which almost always means it’s either tragically tiny or porn-star huge. And
given the glazed look in your eyes after he left the other day, I’m gonna go
with door number two on that one.”
She laughs, dropping her eyes back to her tablet. Then her brow furrows.
“What?”
She purses her lips, still staring at the screen. “He’s really not your boyfriend,
right?”
“Oh. Cool.”
I look away.
“No. Fuck that.”
“Well, still. That’s fucking bullshit. You need to make him sweat that he
didn’t bring you.”
I glare at her. But she does this ridiculous pout-face glare right back at me
that always cracks me up, and I laugh.
“You’re getting ready at my place tonight before the gala. We need to make
sure you’re all dressed up.”
“I dress up!”
“Elsa, I love you. But your idea of dressing up makes it look like you’ve got
a hot date with a deposition. We need you dressed up like you’ve got a hot
date with big porn star dick.”
I groan, blushing.
“We need you looking like Princess Diana in the revenge dress after Charles
stuck his dick in Camilla.”
“Fumi—”
“No negotiating, it’s happening. Trust me… You’re going to look hot.”
S HE ’ S NOT WRONG .
Eight hours later, after I grudgingly submit to Fumi’s “glow up” makeover, I
walk into the gala feeling like a freaking movie star.
I even stop in the foyer of the Plaza Hotel, where the event is being held, to
glance at myself in one of the floor-length, golden-edged mirrors. Heat
tingles through my cheeks as I grin.
There’s a hint—maybe much, much more than a hint—of truth to what Fumi
said earlier. I don’t really ever dress up. At least, not like this. Not
glamorously. But tonight, I’m wearing this stunning, cherry-red Alexander
McQueen gown of Fumi’s, which fits me perfectly and might be the most
gorgeous dress I’ve ever worn.
Sleeveless, floor-length, with a high neck in front and scooping all the way
down to the small of my back, with a slit all the way up to my thigh. I’ve got
on matching red, towering heels, and Fumi spent about forty-five minutes
turning my straw-straight hair into a flowing, wavy masterpiece that tumbles
past my shoulders.
I’ve literally never once dressed like this in my life. And honestly, I really
like it.
Fumi took so much time getting me ready that she herself is arriving a little
later. So for now I’m flying solo as I float through the doors into the main
event hall where the gala is being held.
“My my my!”
“Well, it’s freaking stunning on you. You should wear red more often.”
Taylor waves a hand. “Meh. I usually hate these things. So does Gabriel.
These are more Alistair’s bag. But, you gotta smile for the cameras and kiss
some rings here and there, right?”
“Do you?”
She laughs. “Well, when you make equity partner next year, you’ll find out
just how un-fun it really is at the top.”
I blink. Taylor stiffens, making a face before she smiles awkwardly at me.
She grins. “You should probably pretend you didn’t hear that. But…spoiler
alert, we’re fast tracking you. You’re crushing it, Elsa. And with the yearly
partnership review coming up in five months, the brothers and I are in full
agreement: you should be bumped up to equity.”
She grins, hugging me before pulling back. “It’s not charity. You’ve worked
your ass off, Elsa. For us, and to get here in the first place. You’ve earned
this.”
I swallow, shaking with the adrenaline rush of it all. Equity partner. Like,
fuck.
“I—wow. Taylor, thank you so—”
“Just…” she grins. “Really. Keep that on the down-low for now, okay?”
“For sure.”
She grins, turning to snag two flutes of champagne from a passing tray and
then passing me one.
“Cheers. To you, and to your long and fruitful career at Crown and Black.”
I END up having two more glasses of champagne with Taylor. Because how
do you say no when it’s your boss, and when she’s just told you you’re
getting the promotion of a lifetime, which, by the way, comes with about a
four-hundred-percent pay bump.
Literally.
So by the time she gives me one last hug before going to make the rounds,
I’m feeling great.
Drunk enough that I flat out ignore Leo when he strides in with Gavan
Tsarenko and glares at me from across the ballroom. Drunk enough that when
he does manage to corner me and try and grab me by the wrist, I simply shrug
him off and disappear into the crowd.
No. I’m feeling too good right now to deal with his shit or his threats. They’ll
still be there tomorrow, anyway.
I make the rounds myself, talking to a few of our VIP clients. Alistair
introduces me to a handsome older Scottish guy named Cormac Heath, a
client of Crown and Black that I’ve never met before.
I’m stunned when I’m introduced to his wife, and realize she’s the super
famous modern artist Ella Veers. I mean, I’ve seen her work hanging in the
Tate Modern in London, for God’s sake. So when she tells me she loves my
dress, it’s sort of a surreal moment.
I drink more champagne, and enjoy the conversation, and focus on all the
amazingly good things in my life.
But then, laughing at something Cormac just said, I turn, and my eyes lock
onto Hades, looking sinfully hot in a black tux.
…With a pretty brunette hanging off his arm in a dress that makes mine look
like rags.
I shoot daggers at him, even if he can’t see me through the crowd. I’ve never
seen Hades dressed up. His go-to seems to be dark jeans and white t-shirts, or
occasionally, business casual slacks with a button up shirt, no tie.
But in a tux?
Sweet Jesus.
It’s positively criminal. He looks like a fucking movie star at the premiere of
his superhero action film. It’s the chiseled jaw combined with the slightly
longer dark hair and the piercing blue eyes. The high cheekbones. The broad,
muscled shoulders.
The general “fuck the world” devil-may-care cavalier, cocky attitude that
swirls around him like smoke.
Or maybe it’s just the fact that when I look at Hades, I see pure sin. I see a
man who has pushed me past every boundary I have and left me gasping
there, aching for more.
Right this second, though, I see a man who has recently managed to occupy
roughly eighty-five percent of my thoughts walking into the gala with
someone else.
And it makes me furious, even though I know that’s not fair, and that I have
no right to feel this way.
I grab a flute of champagne off another tray. I’m still glaring at Hades and the
little princess hanging off his arm as I drink, before I realize the glass went
down way too fast.
A lot more.
I only hope it’s enough to turn off the part of me that can’t stop thinking
about him.
26
HADES
H OLY . Fuck.
I spot Elsa the second I walk into the ballroom of the Plaza. She looks
amazing. So amazing that I don’t realize I’ve just stepped on Vanya’s foot in
her open-toed shoes until she winces and grabs my arm.
“Ouch!”
She’s talking to some older dude in a tux, along with a younger woman
who’d damn well better be his wife, seeing as how Elsa is cracking up at
whatever dumb joke he’s just made.
“I’m going to go make the rounds.” Vanya pats my arm before disentangling
herself. “If you’re going to the bar, could you get me a red wine? Something
expensive and old.”
I make my way to the bar, ignoring the suits who try and stop me for a chat. I
order a whiskey and a glass of something red without getting specific. Please,
it’s the Crown and Black gala at the Plaza. All the wine is old and expensive.
A dark figure leans against the bar next to me. I turn, and suddenly find
myself eye-to-eye with Gavan Tsarenko.
“Of all the gin joints, hmm?” he muses, a tight smile on his chiseled face.
“I think it’s fairly safe to assume we don’t know a thing about one another,
Hades.”
I give him a flat smile in return. “Well, maybe that’s for the best. If you’ll
excuse me—”
Unfortunately, diplomacy has always been just about my very weakest suit.
“I think the really interesting move, Gavan,” I growl, “is lighting kids on
fucking fire.”
His jaw tightens. “You don’t honestly believe I’m capable of that, do you?”
He snorts, shaking his head as he sips the Belvedere on the rocks the
bartender’s just poured him.
“I’m insulted.”
“Well, maybe you could go strong arm another old-timer into selling you a
warehouse you don’t need to make yourself feel better.”
His lips curl at the corners. “Who says I have no need for Mr. Robinson’s
warehouse?”
“I wasn’t aware any of this was a game at all, Hades. But if you’re just
having fun,” he snarls, “perhaps you could stop sniffing around Serj
Mirzoyan and save us both a lot of headaches.”
“About?”
“Excusing yourself before we even started this conversation. I’m not sure we
have anything to talk about if this is how we’re going to behave.”
I glare at his back as he disappears into the crowd. I’m about to slam back my
whiskey and order five more when Vanya shoves herself against the bar next
to me.
“Russian embargo.”
She arches a brow. “Huh. I did see Leo Stavrin prowling about. I figured the
one holding his leash was probably around here as well.”
“Your father is talking to them, too, isn’t he?” I lock eyes with her. “The
Reznikov Bratva, I mean.”
Elsa.
Except I fucking hate it. I hate how close he’s standing to her. And I see
fucking red, as red as her gown, when he leans down and murmurs something
into her fucking ear.
“Hades?”
“Sorry. What would I have to do to throw a stick into the spokes of that
situation?”
“The whole thing is coming from Melik. He’s been hanging around with
some of the guys in Leo Stavrin’s crew for years, trying to look tough.”
I frown. “He can’t hang around your own family’s crews to look tough?”
“Not when they all hate him and think he’s a joke.”
I snicker.
“Melik’s the one that brought Leo to my father, and then Leo brought in
Gavan. My dad’s willing to hear the Russians out, and I’ll be honest, I’m sure
he’d be perfectly fine with this thing turning into a bidding war between your
family and Gavan. But the thing is, he hates the Russians.”
“Because of the turf war between your family and them about a year ago?”
She nods.
“From what I hear, Gavan’s still got an ax to grind about that,” I continue.
“Your father’s men killed his top captain.”
“Yeah,” she mutters. “That was after the Reznikovs shot up a car they
thought my father was in. He wasn’t, as it turned out, but the woman he’d
been dating for almost six years, after our mom died, was. He was planning
on marrying her.”
“And yet your dad is still entertaining Gavan’s proposals on this deal?”
Her mouth twists. “Money talks, I guess. But he still fucking hates the
Russians.”
“He’s forbidden it, literally threatening to write Melik out of his will if he
keeps doing it.”
My brow arches.
Interesting.
“So, if you can prove to my father that Melik is still chummy with Leo’s
crew, Dad’ll lose his shit. I don’t know if it’ll torpedo the talks with Gavan.
But it might.”
I grin as I clink my glass to hers. “You know what, Vanya? We should have
cleared this up between us years ago.”
She laughs.
I blink, whirling to see Elsa glaring absolute death at Vanya, her hip cocked
aggressively and her face very, very flushed. Judging from the lopsided way
she’s holding the almost-empty champagne flute in her hand, I’m guessing
she’s drunk.
Yikes.
Vanya looks more shocked than offended. But suddenly, I realize I was way
off when I thought Elsa was just “drunk.”
She’s shit-faced.
Except it comes out more like “ur absholuely righ” with the way Elsa is
slurring.
“Yes, I must be confusing you with the thousands of women orbiting him
trying to get a little piece of him.”
“Believe me.” Vanya’s smile is getting less polite. “That is not the case here.”
“No? You’re pawing all over him with your tits half out just because?”
Elsa jolts as I grab her upper arm and drop my mouth to her ear.
“Stop it,” I growl. “You’re way out of line and I don’t think you realize it.”
“You’re not—”
“Well…” Elsa drawls at Vanya. “At least I can tell by the way you’re
walking that he hasn’t fucked you yet tonight, so there’s that…”
“It’s just screwing,” Elsa says venomously. “That’s it. Nothing more. No big
fucking deal.”
“I’m sorry, I think I’m getting dragged into the middle of something—”
“You know what, I’d say maybe he hasn’t screwed you yet because you’re so
fucking boring,” Elsa slurs. “But, maybe that’s actually his type. So, get on
up there, sister. Ride that coc—hey!”
“Excuse us,” I hiss to Vanya, who gives me an arched brow and a nod as I
grab Elsa and drag her away and out a side door.
She gasps as I slam her against the wall of the quiet hallway.
“Aww, I’m sowwy,” she coos sarcastically. “Did I offend your piece of ass
for the night?”
“No, you insulted the daughter of a somewhat dangerous crime lord, but
yeah, no problem.”
She scowls. “It’s fine.”
“You’re wasted.”
Her voice suddenly goes soft and quiet, with a broken edge to it. Her throat
bobs as she drags her big, hazel eyes up to mine, her face falling.
“Why are you even bothering with a mere mortal like me?”
She’s always so full of piss and vinegar, and so full of this all-business
confidence, that seeing her so vulnerable like this is almost heartbreaking.
“Elsa—”
W E ’ RE BARELY a block from the Plaza when movement in the passenger seat
next to me catches my eye. I turn, and my jaw clenches.
Shit.
Elsa’s still beyond drunk. But besides “angry” and “sad”, drunk Elsa is also
apparently horny Elsa. Because right now, she’s turned herself sideways in
the passenger seat with the slit of her dress open, giving me a really good
view of her white lace panties.
“Elsa, you’re drunk.”
“So?”
Her hand slides up her soft, creamy thigh. My eyes return to the road, but
then dart right back to her. I watch as her fingers tease over the waistband of
her panties, and then suddenly slide right into them.
Fuck.
I’m not going to mess around with a wasted woman, especially when I’m
stone cold sober myself. But, I’m only human. And watching Elsa’s face
melt, her eyes rolling back as her finger strokes her pussy under her panties
has me hard in seconds.
“You know it does,” I growl. “Elsa, that would make a dead man want you.”
She blushes.
“But you don’t have to do a thing to make me want you.” My eyes lock with
hers. “I always fucking want you.”
She shivers, chewing on her lip and then moaning softly as her fingers tease
at her pussy.
“Yes.”
Of course I do. I always do. Day and night. No matter what the fuck else I
have going on or should be thinking about or concentrating on.
I’m watching the road, because traffic is getting dicey, when I suddenly feel a
hand sliding over my thigh.
“Elsa—”
I groan as her soft fingers wrap around my bulging cock under my tux pants.
“You’re so hard…”
“Whyyy?”
She spins, on her knees in the passenger seat now as she leans over and starts
trying to open my pants.
She stops. Her hand suddenly slips back out of my pants, her eyes, big and
wounded, looking up at me as I glance sidelong at her.
“Elsa—”
“Maybe it’s because, despite your best fucking efforts, I kind of like you! A
lot!,” I snap. “And I don’t want to fuck around with you when I’m sober and
you’re supremely wasted!”
The car goes silent, me staring at the road with a white-knuckle grip on the
wheel, Elsa still on her knees leaning over the middle console.
She pukes.
“…Head.”
27
ELSA
“H OW DO YOU FEEL ?”
Like absolute. Fucking. Shit. At least I’m feeling relatively sober after
throwing up all the champagne in my stomach, and I’m feeling a lot better
after the shower I just took. But still…not great.
Why not sitting in, say, in the living room? Because he’s not wearing pants,
seeing as I threw up all over them an hour and a half ago. And Hades sans
pants is not something I’m exposing the fifteen-year-old who also lives in
this apartment to.
I mean, he’s not naked. But he might as well be. Currently, he’s wearing
black boxer briefs and an old, super-oversized t-shirt of mine. On him,
though, the fucking thing looks like it was painted on. It would be comical if
it wasn’t so outrageously sexy.
“Hades, I—”
“Don’t.”
“Don’t what?”
My mouth twists. “Exactly how could throwing up on you have been worse?”
He smirks. “You could have had my cock in your mouth when your fifteen
thousand glasses of champagne came back up.”
I blush fiercely. “I…yeah. Well, thank you for not letting me make a fool of
myself while drunk.”
I groan. “I mean the way I was acting in the car. Not all guys would have
stopped me from…yeah.”
“No shit.”
I blush as the acknowledgement pops out of me, my face heating as I turn
away.
“I have to apologize to that woman you were with for saying all of those
horrible things to her.”
“Yeah, well, that was…” I shake my head. “Pretty bad. I was way, way out of
line, and I don’t know how—”
“If you seeing me with her made you feel even a fraction of how I’d feel
seeing you with another man, you don’t have to explain shit to me,” he hisses
quietly. “But to clarify, Vanya Mirzoyan and I are only friends. And barely
that.”
“Yes, it is.”
My eyes snap to his. “No, it’s not. Who you choose to—”
“Oh.” I clear my throat. “Have you…I mean, since we’ve been…” I whirl
away to walk over to the window, unable to meet his eyes. “Wow, okay,
please forget any of that just came out of my—”
“No.”
I shiver at the low growl in his voice, turning to glance over my shoulder at
him, sprawled against my headboard in boxers and a tight t-shirt, looking like
original sin.
“No, I haven’t. And for the sake of them continuing to breathe and remain
alive, there had better not have been any other men.”
“There haven’t been,” I say quietly. “Other guys, I mean. You’re…” I press
my lips together. “You’re it.”
“Why hadn’t you, before me?” he asks, turning and letting his gaze pierce
into me.
His jaw grinds. “Yeah. I mean, I’m not judging, but you’re gorgeous, smart,
successful…”
I shrug. “A boy I was sort of dating in high school was really aggressively
pushy about us ‘taking things to the next level’. And it just totally turned me
off. Then as I got older, casual sex never really interested me, and I never had
the time for relationships, not with my job and my life. That, and most men
are awful, especially if you’re—how did you put it?— ‘gorgeous, smart, and
successful’.” My brow knits again. “And then you hit a certain age where you
still haven’t done anything, and by then it’s become an issue. It’s either a
deal-breaker when you meet someone. Or it’s the opposite. They fetishize it.”
“The last time I actually tried dating was almost four years ago. I went on a
couple of dates—”
“Define a couple of dates,” Hades rasps darkly, his blue eyes instantly
turning stormy and vicious.
“Oh, strictly anal and gang bangs,” I shrug with a grin, obviously joking.
…Or not so obviously, given the way Hades suddenly looks like he’s
planning summary executions in his head.
“I…that’s a joke?”
“I think I was clear before how I felt when it comes to you joking about
things like that.”
“Okay. For real. It was dinner out, three times. Except it turned out he was
the kind of guy who fetishizes virginity. Like, that’s what he was interested
in. Not in me as a person, not in hearing about my career or other parts of my
life in any capacity. Just in my worth as determined by whether or not I’d
slept with anyone before. It was dehumanizing and gross. After a few dates, I
told him it wasn’t going to work out, and he proceeded to stalk me for three
years—Nora, too—until I got a restraining order. Then I moved continents.”
“What?”
My face heats as I shake my head. “It doesn’t matter. It’s over and done with.
I don’t think a public execution is needed to protect my honor, Hades.”
I smile, shaking my head again. “I’d just like to forget about it, honestly.”
I turn to take a seat. But the reading chair in the corner of my room is
currently occupied by a massive stack of legal documents and some folded
clothes. And my bed is currently occupied by a reclining, nearly-naked,
Greek god.
Because I’m embarrassed about what happened tonight, obviously. But also,
I’m scared what it says about me that all I want to do is slide onto that bed
next to him.
But this is only supposed to be fun. It’s supposed to be wild, unhinged, no-
holds-barred sex, nothing more. And snuggling in bed together after
divulging a dark secret about myself seems like it crosses a line from “just
sex” into something more than that.
“I’m not going to tackle you if you want to sit on the bed.”
“Elsa.”
I shiver when his hand drops to mine, taking it in his much bigger one and
squeezing.
“This is new to me, too.”
I scoff. “What, coming home with a girl and not getting laid?”
“Coming home with a girl when I’ve already come home with her before.”
“I don’t do repeats,” he says quietly. “Ever. I’ve never once been with
someone, or gone out with someone, and then done it again.”
On the one hand, thinking about Hades going home with anyone, even once,
makes me feel homicidal. And that alone is something I should probably
unpack with the help of a professional. But also…hang on, what?
I tense.
He feels it.
“…not because of any fetish regarding your fucking virginity. But because it
saves me from having to go find, castrate and murder anyone else who’s ever
touched you before.”
“I mean you just said you weren’t interested in casual sex. But you picked me
of all people, in a fucking sex club, to finally lose your virginity to, at twenty-
six.”
I nod. “And?”
But I can’t. Because I’m scared that if I do, he’ll get up from this bed, walk
out the door, and never come back.
“I…” A deep breath. “I guess I finally decided I wanted to. I was going to
Venom with my boss for a client meeting anyway.”
“With Dante?” he growls. “That’s what you were talking about earlier that
day at the meeting?”
I nod. “Except when we got there, I wasn’t needed for it after all.”
“And a sex club where everyone wears masks and doesn’t use names is a
pretty solid place to go if you’re in the market to lose your virginity to a
stranger but have a fear of that stranger bumping into you on the street
afterward and forcing you to face your sins.”
“Yeah, basically.”
My lips twist as I nod. “Yeah. Sorry. I figured if nothing else you’d know
what you were doing.”
He shrugs and sighs. Neither of us says anything for a minute as we sit there
on the bed, holding hands. When I glance at him, I see that his jaw is
clenched tight. Then he looks away.
“I don’t do what I do because I’m this emotionally stunted sex addict that
everyone seems to think I am, you know.” His jaw ticks. “I was thirteen when
I lost my virginity.”
“My brother, Atlas, used to really beat on me, hard. I mean, he used to beat
up on all of the brothers, but I was the only one stupid enough not to stay
down, so he took a special interest in making my life hell. When I was
thirteen, he decided the reason I was ‘a pussy’ and ‘a threat to his authority’
was that I hadn’t been with a girl yet.”
My heart breaks for him. My very soul hurts at the idea of a young Hades—
Jesus, younger even than Nora—being forced to do that.
“I’m so sorry,” I say quietly. My hand squeezes his, twisting as our fingers
entwine.
He just nods.
“That’s why I don’t like being fucked up or drunk when I’m being intimate. I
mean, a drink or two is okay, but…”
We sit there for another minute in silence, just holding hands, allowing the
openness of everything we’ve just shared with each other to settle as it will.
“For what it’s worth,” he finally says quietly, turning to me, “it wasn’t easy.”
“What wasn’t?”
In a bed.
With Hades.
He nods, his jaw clenched tight and his eyes smoldering with ice-blue flame,
as if he can barely restrain himself from touching me or doing so much more
than that.
The comically small t-shirt he’s wearing is on my floor in a split second. And
I’m shuddering and moaning as he pushes the robe off my shoulders. His
fierce gaze slides over me slowly, drinking in every naked detail of me in the
low light of the bedroom. I gasp as his mouth drops to my breasts, his teeth
grazing over a nipple before he bites down.
Fuck.
I cry out, my back arching as he ruthlessly bites and sucks first one nipple
and then the other, turning my core molten as I grind against the thick, hard
bulge in his boxers. Hades growls, pushing me back as if to pin me to the
bed. But suddenly, I’m shoving him back against the headboard, turning the
tables on him as I shake my head.
“Uh-uh.”
I kiss him deeply. Then, pulling away, I let my mouth trail first down his jaw,
then his neck, relishing the way his muscles tense and coil under the touch of
my lips. I move lower and lower, down over his abs, then even lower still.
I blush as my eyes drag up to his, my fingers slipping into the waist of his
boxers. “Finishing what I started earlier.”
I peel the elastic down, and then whimper when his huge cock springs free,
fully erect, slapping heavily against his abs.
Holy shit.
It takes my breath away every single time I see it. And just like every other
time, the incredulity that this freaking thing actually fits inside me is both
startling and outrageously sexy.
I keep my eyes on his as I reach for him, curling my fingers around his girth
before lowering my mouth to the swollen head. I stroke him up and down,
having to use both hands as I kneel between his legs.
My tongue drags over and around the crown, and the way Hades groans so
deeply, the way his abs clench so tightly as his hips raise toward me, sends a
pulse rippling through my core. I moan, licking him again, dragging my
tongue down to his balls before lapping all the way back up to the top.
My lips part, and when I take him inside my mouth, Hades hisses in pleasure.
“Just like that,” he growls. I shudder with electricity as his hand slides into
my hair and holds it in his fist. “Such a good little kitten.”
I moan, swallowing him deeper into the back of my throat. Hades groans in
pleasure, fisting my hair as I bob my mouth up and down, tasting the salty
sweetness of his precum on my tongue.
I go faster, and he groans deeply. Then I slow down, sensually making a big
show of dragging my wet tongue around his head until it’s slick and
glistening with my spit. I suck the head between my lips, teasing the slit with
the very tip of my tongue before I pull away and lock eyes with him.
“Good.”
His fist tightens in my hair, pulling hard enough to make me flinch, but also
hard enough for pure desire and heat to flood my core, turning my thighs
slick with need.
My eyes bulge as he suddenly rams his cock deep. I choke, but I force myself
to open my throat wider, taking more of him. My eyes water, but the burning
need and throbbing ache for him only grows hotter and fiercer as he gets
rougher.
Hades hisses as his fist holding my hair guides my head up and down his
throbbing, hard, glistening, wet cock. The lewd wet gluck sounds of his cock
fucking my mouth has me more turned on and wetter than I’ve ever been, and
I start to moan as I squeeze my legs together.
My mouth bobs faster as I swallow his cock deeper. Spit runs down his shaft
as I stroke it, dripping onto his heavy balls as his thighs tighten and his abs
ripple.
Our eyes lock as I swallow him deep, opening my throat all the way for his
big dick as pure lust roars in his eyes, thrusting in and out.
I don’t know why I say it. Perhaps a hidden kink I didn’t know I had, or one
he’s brought out in me. Maybe from some porn I watched. Who the hell
knows. But it just tumbles out, and when it does, suddenly I’m the one being
teased and pushed to the edge. Saying it out loud has me so fucking wet, I
could come right now just from touching my clit.
And Hades? For him, saying those words out loud is like pulling a trigger.
His eyes flash, his jaw grinding viciously. He snarls as he grabs my hair in
both his hands, his abs flexing as he thrusts hard up into my mouth, until he’s
fucking it as if it’s my pussy riding his cock.
And suddenly, with a groan, he’s burying his cock deep in my mouth and
exploding across my tongue.
What the fuck just came over me? It’s like I couldn’t get enough of his dick—
like I was cock-drunk.
I blush fiercely as I look up at him, half expecting shock or a weird look in
his eyes.
All over his face. In his clenched jaw. In the way his cock is still rock hard in
my hands.
And before I know what’s happening, I’m gasping and my eyes are starting
from my head as Hades throws me down on the bed, wrapping a hand around
my throat and moving between my legs. I whimper as he lifts my ankles and
throws them over his shoulders. He lines his throbbing cock up, easing it
between my swollen lips as our eyes lock.
I blush, feeling his cum starting to dry on my skin. “Hang on, let me—”
I cry out, arching off the bed in pleasure when he thrusts every single inch
deep into me.
“Uh-uh, kitten,” he growls, his muscles rippling and his eyes blazing as he
grabs my hips, my ankles still over his powerful shoulders as he starts to fuck
me hard. “I want to watch you come on my dick with my cum all over your
face like a good girl.”
He slams into me, and my world explodes. The angle is so fucking perfect
he’s hitting places inside of me I didn’t even know were there, and it feels
like I’m drowning in him. I reach back, clawing at the headboard for dear life
as Hades impales me on his cock over and over, letting me feel every thick,
hard, swollen inch of him as he fucks me like he’s trying to kill me.
He reaches out, wrapping a hand around my throat and squeezing just enough
to send me into outer space as his cock rams into me over and over. The
edges of my vision darken, and my sanity blurs. My eyes roll back, my face
crumpling before I force my gaze to lock with his.
When I do, the dark, smoldering fire in his eyes utterly consumes me as he
completely dominates my body. The pressure swells as my skin flickers with
sensual fire. My core tightens and my legs start to shake, until suddenly,
there’s no stopping it.
“Come on my fucking cock, kitten,” Hades rasps, his eyes locked with mine.
“Come for daddy.”
When I come, it hits me like a bomb detonating, and everything goes white.
I’m barely aware of his hand covering my mouth to muffle my cries of
pleasure as I explode for him. The waves come faster and harder, growing
more and more powerful as I come a second time, then a third as he keeps
fucking me relentlessly.
Suddenly, he’s leaning over me and slamming his mouth to mine, swallowing
my screams of pleasure as he groans into my lips. His entire body tenses up
as his cock swells even bigger inside of me, pulsing as his cum spills deep.
I’m fairly certain I’m dead. Or at least, not in reality anymore. I’m floating in
the ether somewhere, barely aware of my own existence as I feel his body
cocooning around me, his lips and teeth nibbling at my neck.
That wasn’t sex. That was a religious experience. That was nirvana. A brush
with a higher power.
I’m flushed, slick with sweat, and still trembling when I can finally open my
eyes. Hades is still poised right above me, his eyes locked on mine.
…and I’m fairly certain we’ve just left “causal sex” somewhere in the dust.
I jolt, gasping and whipping my gaze to the bedroom door when I hear the
pounding against it.
“I’m so sorry, Nora!!” I blurt, my face filling with heat. “The TV was up too
loud and—”
“Yeah, because I’m a fucking idiot, Elsa!” she yells through the door. “So?
Am I going walking or not!?”
“You’re not going for a walk at…” I glance at the clock and cringe. “One-
thirty in the morning!”
When her bedroom door slams, I groan and bury my face in my hands. Hades
chuckles, gently sliding from between my legs and moving off the bed. A
second later, he’s back, and I gasp as I feel something warm and wet between
my legs.
A washcloth.
“Hades…”
“Shh,” he commands with a finger to his lips. “We don’t want to wake the
sleeping dragon again.”
I groan, blushing vividly. But I lie there, letting him clean between my legs,
then wipe my face with a second cloth. When he’s done, he clears his throat
as he sits on the edge of the bed.
“You don’t have to.” It just blurts out of me. “I mean, I know we’re just—”
“To?”
“Stay.”
28
HADES
T HIS IS MORE .
More than I was looking for or expecting. More than I’ve ever felt I’ve
deserved. More than I’ve ever wanted.
More…everything.
In the darkness of the room, with just the lights of the city stealing in around
the edges of the curtains, I watch Elsa as she sleeps next to me.
This is a first.
I’m strangely okay with that. Actually, I’m a whole fucking lot more than
okay with that. If I wasn’t, I’d already be out the door and gone. But leaving
her and her bed right now is the last thing I want to do.
This is a new side I’ve never seen before: “at peace” Elsa. I drop my eyes to
the woman lying asleep next to me, and my lips curl as I shake my head.
“What makes you so special?” I murmur, my eyes sliding over her bare
shoulder as I tuck a strand of white-blonde hair behind her ear.
I already know what it is that makes her different. I’ve spent my entire adult
life losing myself in strangers. Not to find anything out about myself, but to
hide from myself. It was never because of a desire for pleasure and escape.
Rather, it was a need for the obliteration that meaningless sex with
numberless strangers brought me. And that’s the part that my family’s always
gotten so wrong with their jokes about my personal life.
I’m not a sex addict. I’ve just been trying for the last sixteen years to escape
the memory of a room that smelled like chemicals, a woman who tasted like
cigarettes and regret, and a brother who did not care. And the blank, black
escape of giving small pieces of myself to people who didn’t give a fuck
about me as a human was always the easiest and fastest way for me to do
that, even if it was only a temporary relief.
But I think I just found a better one. Except it’s not an escape at all.
It’s a cure.
She murmurs, stirring in her sleep only enough to curl her body back against
mine as I slide in behind her.
Until I hear footsteps. Until her bedroom door swings open, and a panting,
sweating Elsa wearing running clothes comes bouncing in.
She grins, pulling the headphones out of her ear as her eyes land on mine.
“You’re awake.”
She giggles, shrugging. “I had Gatorade. I like to get a run in before I get
ready for the day.”
“Type A much?”
“Is there a kid sister in there, too? Because my pants are still in you dryer.”
Elsa laughs. “She’s on her way to dance class, actually. Help yourself. I’ll be
in the shower.”
She steps into the bathroom, closing, but not latching, the door behind her.
When I hear the water start to run, my cock thickens against my thigh.
I slide out of bed, but don’t go to the kitchen. I walk into the bathroom, which
is already filling with steam. Elsa’s running clothes are discarded in a heap
on the floor. Through the steam, I can see her naked body under the spray of
the shower.
She gasps when I open the glass door and step in behind her. She whimpers
when my lips crush to hers.
Then she moans when I pin her to shower wall and guide my cock between
her legs.
T HERE ’ S one thing bothering me about last night. I didn’t bring it up with her
at the time, because I was having way too good a time with her.
But now, I would very much like to know why Elsa looked so fucking
cornered and scared while she was talking to Gavan Tsarenko.
She smiles. “You are here to see someone then, sir?” she replies in heavily
accented English. “We are members only, I am afraid.”
“Yes, I’m here as a guest of Pascha Andreev. I don’t believe he’s here yet,
though.”
Or will ever be again.
She taps something on her computer, and then smiles at me. “Ahh, of course,
sir. If you’d like to wait for him in the lounge—”
“I’d love to unwind for a bit and just meet him in the steam room, if I could?”
This place is ground fucking zero for Russian Bratva business. It was a
gamble whether or not Pascha had a membership here. But luckily,
apparently he does. Or, did. Or…whatever.
The woman at the desk smiles. “Not a problem, sir. If you’d like to follow the
hallway past these doors, your second right will be the locker room, which
will lead to the rest of the facilities.”
“Thank you.”
I take a seat on one of the tile benches in the giant steam room. Across from
me, half-obscured by clouds of fog with a towel wrapped around his waist the
same as me, a shirtless, tattooed Gavan gives me a pointed look.
I shrug. “If that’s your way of asking me to take the towel off…”
“I’ve been thinking about joining, so I asked for a tour. So far I’m
impressed.”
“Fantastic. Seems like that might take care of the sponsorship require—”
“What the fuck do you want,” Gavan growls. “Because I come here not to be
pestered by anyone, and for the silence.” He glares at me. “I do love my
silence, Hades.”
I spread my arms. “Fine. Cards on the table. What do you want with Serj
Mirzoyan?”
Gavan smirks. “I think it’s obvious we want the same thing from Serj. But I
also don’t think we’re really talking about the Albanians right now, are we?”
He smirks. “Elsa?”
I want to knock his fucking teeth in for even saying her name. But I restrain
myself.
“Yes,” I hiss.
Gavan shakes his head. “As much as I’d enjoy fucking with you on this, she’s
no one to me. She’s a lawyer who happens to work for the firm that I use for
most of my legal needs.”
“Perhaps,” Gavan hisses quietly, “you should find Leo when he’s taking a
fucking steam bath and ask him then. Or perhaps Pascha Andreev, who has
so mysteriously vanished.” His mouth twists into a thin smile. “Though I’m
extremely curious to find out what it is that’s stopping you from asking her
directly.”
“Careful,” I growl.
Gavan pulls his towel away just enough to show me the knife in a sheath
strapped to his bare, inked thigh.
“Believe me, I’m always careful, Hades.” He flips the towel back down.
“And I’m also out of fucking patience and answers.”
I’m only half sure I believe what he just said regarding Elsa. I can also read
him well enough to see I’m not going to get anything else from him. But that
was only half the point.
The other half was to let him know in no uncertain terms that if he wants
anything with Elsa, or even wants to speak to her again, it’s going to be
through me.
“Hades.”
“This stunt you pulled today is amusing all of once. I can appreciate your
balls. But don’t mistake amusement for an invitation. We’re not friends,
Hades. Nor are we business partners. And we never will be.”
He smirks. “If this happens again, I can promise you, you’ll find out quickly
enough.”
But no one meets him there. I got to check out the ridiculously cool
penthouse built into the top of an old clocktower overlooking the
Williamsburg and Manhattan bridges all of once, and that was before he met
Una. Since then, to my knowledge, no one’s been invited over.
So, yeah, today it’s the brownstone where I’m meeting him. The psychotic,
green-eyed Irishman looks me over curiously as we sit on two couches facing
each other.
He tilts his head thoughtfully, sinking back into the couch. “I’d like to remind
you that I’m very good at reading people. But to answer your question, yes, I
have someone. His name is Oren Frey, and he’s good.”
“How good.”
“Very. He’s arguably the best. If there’s something to be found, he’ll find it.
The man’s a bloodhound.”
Cillian’s hand reaches automatically for his pocket before he stops himself, a
gritted snarl on his lips. He’s recently quit smoking. Which is great for his
health, and pretty terrible for the health of just about everyone around him
who isn’t Una.
“Sometimes it’s best not to go looking for monsters, or to ask questions you
don’t want the answers to. I need to ask you one last time: have you truly
thought this through?”
Not really. But I need to know. I have to know what the connection is
between Elsa and the Bratva. It might not actually involve Gavan at all. But it
definitely involves Leo.
And I’m tired of wondering if I’m going crazy.
“Well?”
Cillian eyes me one last time before he shrugs. “If you insist.”
He pulls out his phone, and a second later, mine dings with a shared contact.
“Thank—”
“People bury their ghosts and their skeletons for a reason, Hades,” he growls.
“And in my storied and fairly blood-soaked experience, I’ve found it’s best to
leave them where they are.”
29
ELSA
HADES
you still haven’t worn my presents. I’m beginning to feel insulted
It’s really quite disturbing how comfortable I’ve gotten playing with fire
when it comes to Hades. How much I enjoy pushing his buttons, in ways I
know he’ll punish me for later.
“Nobody.”
“It’s amusing to me how you still think I’m six years old.”
I roll my eyes. “Please. I don’t think you’re six.”
“Oh, just not old enough to understand that you have a boyfriend? Or the
concept of sexting?”
My mouth flies open. “What the hell do you know about the concept of
sexting?!”
She snickers. “Your generation and older still doesn’t seem to get that the
internet is forever. My generation has zero interest in it. Like, sending people
pics of your booty is insane.”
“Just Hades.”
Yes, Hades has been over twice more since the night of the gala a week and a
half ago. Yes, he’s slept over both times. And yes, we’ve done our best to be
quiet in our…activities, including but not limited to, Hades muffling my
moans with his hand, his mouth, my panties, and his cock.
I sigh as the doors slide open and we get off the elevator onto our floor.
“Yes.”
Shit.
I answered that one way too quickly, and it hasn’t gone unnoticed by the
world’s sharpest fifteen-year-old.
“He sleeps over, you get all mushy when he sexts—sorry, just regular texts—
you, and you’re exclusive. That about sum it up?”
My lungs go icy as I grab her hand back, just as it was extending to our door
holding her keys.
My heart clenches.
“A LL GOOD .”
Hades is smiling as he steps back into the hallway, but there’s a shadow of
darkness flickering in his eyes when he glances at me.
“Probably just didn’t click shut behind you when you left.”
“The place is completely clean. But someone’s definitely been through your
things. And Nora’s.”
“They were good, but not that good.” His jaw clenches. “I didn’t want to
scare her, but neither of you is staying here tonight. No fucking way.”
“I’ve got room at my place. Pack bags for the both of you. Don’t freak Nora
out. Tell her that you’ve found out that the door being left ajar was actually
building maintenance, and they say they need to do some important upgrades
to your electrical system tonight, maybe the next night too.”
Hades glances up into the rearview mirror, grinning at Nora in the backseat.
“Thanks. Do you drive yet?”
I roll my eyes. “I don’t forbid it, Nora,” I sigh. “The law forbids it. You’re
fifteen.”
I shoot Hades a withering look as he grins at me, clearly well aware of what
he’s doing.
“Yeah!” Nora chirps from the back seat. “I can practice!” She sighs, shaking
her head at Hades in the mirror. “She thinks just because she doesn’t drive,
no one else should.”
I blush as he swivels his gaze to me. “You don’t know how to drive?”
I glance at him, simmering when I see that cocky grin and those piercing eyes
lancing into me. He clears his throat as he looks back at Nora again.
“Hey, by the way: any other guys at school bothering you these days?”
“He is?”
Hades nods. “I know his dad. Theo’s got some physical therapy to do, and
one more surgery on his shoulder. But he’s a tough kid. He’ll be okay. Nick’s
on the mend, too.”
Nora smiles a little. “Well, I think the whole world had already heard the
story of them getting kicked out of my apartment. So when they got
jumped…” Her mouth twists. “Basically the whole school is now terrified of
me. Or at least all the guys are.”
I smile.
“Good,” Hades grunts. “Keep it that way. Little shits should be scared of
women with backbone.”
Nora grins.
My sister nods.
“Here.”
Hades reaches across me, opening the glove compartment and plucking out
something small before closing it again. He twists his arm behind him,
handing the fob with a button on it to Nora.
“And then, what, you go full on Batman and come rescue me?” she says
dryly.
Hades chuckles. “No, but your sister will. I’ll hook it up to her phone when
we get to my place.”
He grins, shaking his head. “Nah, it doesn’t work like that. But if you’re ever
in trouble, or you feel unsafe…” His jaw tenses. “Push it. My younger sister
is twenty, and I’ve got one on her keys, too.”
Nora nods, eying the little fob a little less skeptically. “Cool. Thanks.”
“Thanks,” I mouth.
M Y JAW DROPS as the Camaro comes to a stop outside of a stunning
brownstone on an idyllic street in Brooklyn Heights, across the East River
from lower Manhattan.
“Wait—this is you?”
“Mm-hmm.”
He pushes a button on the dash and then guides the car down a sloped
driveway that leads under the brownstone to a garage with an automatic door.
We park inside next to a couple of other gorgeous cars; some, old classics
and others gleaming new performance roadsters. Nora whistles.
“Wow, are all the tenants of this building rich car nuts?”
Nora sputters. “Wait, you own the whole building? And all those cars down
there?”
I roll my eyes.
The doors open on the fourth floor, and Nora and I just about trip over our
tongues.
Holy. Shit.
The place is stunning, and honestly? It’s not at all what I would have pictured
the lair of the infamous Hades Drakos looking like. I imagined a BDSM
dungeon, or some other kind of subterranean cave. Or maybe a frat-house
type place outfitted in total bachelor-pad bullshit, like a tacky Sharper Image
store.
Almost the entire top floor of the brownstone has been converted into one big
open loft space. Gorgeous exposed-brick walls, huge windows, and wooden
beams and ceiling rafters have my jaw on the floor as I stare in awe.
The furniture is old, weathered farmhouse style wood and deeply tanned
leather. And the walls…holy shit. The whole length of the place on one side
is nothing but floor-to-ceiling wooden bookshelves. And they’re filled with
books—the same books I used to mock as some sort of “date bait” on his
Instagram.
At the back of the loft space, an enormous kitchen area is framed by a back
wall made entirely of black iron and glass, with matching doors that lead out
to a lush, plant-filled patio.
“Dude, this place is insaaaaane!” Nora breathes, walking around with her
eyes wide and her mouth hanging open.
“Nora, this’ll be you.” He carries her bag to a large, gorgeous brick and
wood-beam guest room.
“Yeah, I’m never leaving. Sorry, not sorry.”
Hades cocks a brow, glancing at me. My face flushes twelve shades of red as
I groan.
“Frankie’s,” he says, his face almost caving in ecstasy as he transfers all the
delicious smelling gnocchi, cavatelli, and cacio e pepe from the to-go boxes
onto plates for the three of us to share. “Fucking amazing Italian food.
Possibly the best food in all of New York, actually.” He turns and winks at
me. “Just don’t ever tell my grandmother that.”
I grin as she darts inside to dive into Hades’ huge record collection.
“That’s all you, right?”
“Raising her.”
I nod. “Yeah, pretty much, I guess. Since I was seventeen and she was six.”
“You did a pretty fucking amazing job,” he murmurs. “She’s a great kid.”
Then instantly, I cringe as the next song pipes out over the speakers.
Goddammit, Nora.
The devil herself comes skipping back out to the veranda, giggling as Steve
Miller Band’s “The Joker” hums out of the speakers.
“Hey it’s in your record collection, ass,” I mutter as he grins at me. “And it
was a phase, thank you very much.”
“Yeah, right. She played it for like a year straight when I was maybe nine.
‘Ah-whoo, whoo’!”
An hour later, Nora looks like she’s ready to fall asleep at the table. She
yawns, stretching her arms as she stands.
“All right, I’m going to bed. You guys can make out or whatever now.”
She makes over-the-top kissy faces at the two of us before she heads back
inside and disappears into the guest room.
And I’m suddenly very aware of two things: one, that I’ve been kind of
craving Hades’ touch all night, ever since he swooped in like a black knight
to clear the apartment for us. And two, we’re alone now.
I flush, realizing I’ve been staring at Hades, lost in thought, while he’s been
looking right at me.
“Uh, what?”
Heat floods my core as I bite my lip. But slowly I stand, knocking back the
rest of my wine before I saunter around the table.
“Where, specifically?”
Blushing, I start to move to his lap. I shudder when he yanks me onto him
faster, pulling me astride his legs, facing him. My breath catches as his big
hands circle my waist, squeezing as they slide up my back into my hair. And
before I know it, my mouth is dipping to his, and I’m kissing him deeply.
His tongue delves between my lips, teasing and tasting me as I writhe on his
lap. It’s like a Pavlovian response I get now just from being near him. My
hips grind and roll, and my pulse thuds as I kiss him fiercely.
Tell him.
The thought is like a cold blade lancing into me. It’s been burning a hole in
the front of my brain for weeks: it has to come out, especially with what we
are to each other now. Whatever this is, whatever label we want to give it.
“I…”
My eyes lock with his fierce icy-blues, and suddenly, I’m lost, and my nerve
vanishes in the face of the fierce god looking back at me.
It has to. I can’t bring myself to ruin this perfect moment with something like
this.
“You’re sure?”
“Positive.”
I whimper when I feel his hand slide to my ass and grab a handful of my
skirt, shoving it up to my waist. Desire pools between my thighs as his
fingers stroke my bare skin and then slip under the back of my thong. When I
feel one of them slip down lower and tease over my asshole, I gasp, and pull
back from his kiss.
“Hades…oh fuck…”
His finger dips lower, finding my pussy already soaking wet for him. My
back arches, pushing my ass out as his finger curls into me and starts to
stroke against my g-spot. His lips sear to mine again, kissing me and
swallowing my moans before he pulls back and slowly brings his other hand
up between us.
My eyes widen, my face filling with heat as I realize what he’s holding.
Hades’ eyes glint, his lips curling wickedly as he twists the golden butt plug
in his hand.
“What?”
“Open your mouth,” he growls, lowering his lips to my ear and letting his
teeth graze the soft lobe. “And suck.”
Our eyes lock when he pulls back. My skin tingles, and something dirty and
needy pulses in my core.
My lips part.
“Good girl.”
Our eyes stay on each other as I wrap my lips around the shiny metal,
swirling my tongue over it as lust explodes through my entire body. His other
hand slips behind me, grabbing something I can’t see. When he pulls my
thong to the side again and slips a finger over my ass, it feels slick and warm.
I moan, sucking and tonguing the butt plug as Hades swirls his lubed finger
around my asshole. He adds pressure, and I whimper before suddenly his
finger slips into me.
I gasp, shuddering on his lap as he groans against my neck. The plug slips out
of my mouth, and I’m shaking all over as he brings it behind me. The warm
metallic tip of it centers on my hole, and I try not to tense up as I feel him
start to gently push.
“Open up for me, kitten,” he growls thickly into my ear. “Relax. Let me
watch your tight little ass swallow it like a good girl.”
The plug didn’t look very big in my hands, nor did it feel very big in my
mouth.
But slowly, my breath catching, I can feel the tapered, bulbous head start to
stretch me open. Hades’ teeth drag down my neck, turning me to jelly before
suddenly, the plug gets sucked in, as if my body’s swallowed it up right past
the thick part to clench around the narrow base.
It’s a weird sensation. I feel full in a way I’ve never felt before. But it also
feels incredible. Like there’s this background pressure there, throbbing in my
core.
He kisses me hard, and I melt when I feel him slip my thong back into place,
holding the plug inside me. Then we’re standing, and my legs are so shaky
it’s a struggle not to wobble as he takes my hand and starts to lead me
through the gorgeous loft space.
I can feel the damn plug filling me and rubbing against me with each step.
And fuck, it feels amazing.
We get to the spiral metal staircase that leads up to Hades’ room, which I
haven’t seen yet. Just as I’m about to take my first step up, he stops me. He
cups my face and lowers his mouth to mine, and I’m so lost in the kiss that I
barely even register him tugging the zipper of my skirt down, until the whole
thing falls to my feet.
“Hades…”
My eyes dart to the guest room door, with Nora right on the other side.
I flush deeply, eyeing him and then turning to walk up the stairs in just my
blouse and a pair of thong panties.
I can feel it shift inside me with each step, just as I can feel his eyes leaving a
scorching path across my ass as he follows me up.
The stairs wind up, and suddenly, at the top, my jaw drops.
Woah.
Hades’ bedroom is all glass, like a huge greenhouse on the roof of his
building with panoramic views of all of Brooklyn, the entire East River, and
the whole of Lower Manhattan. A huge bed fills the middle of the room, and
I shiver as I feel his hand take mine, leading me to it.
“You don’t honestly think I’ve ever brought anyone here before, do you?”
I whimper as he slams his mouth to mine and fists my hair. My blouse and
bra are tossed aside. His shirt and jeans follow.
“The windows…”
I’m moaning into his mouth and sliding my hands into his boxers to wrap my
fingers around his massive cock when he tosses me back onto the bed and I
gasp. He drops between my legs, peeling my soaked panties down and
spreading my thighs.
His soft, wet tongue drags up my seam, making me cry out as a shiver of heat
slices through my body. Hades teases my clit, sucking the aching nub
between his lips and swirling his tongue around it as he sucks. His powerful
fingers dig into my thighs, shoving them wide apart as he devours me like
he’s a starving man eating his first meal in a month.
I jolt when I feel his fingers on the plug. He grips the base, and my breath
catches and my eyes roll back as he slowly twists it inside me, like he’s
screwing it into me.
Holy. Fuck.
The sensations are insane as the smooth, slick plug slowly rubs across a
million nerve endings. He twists it one way, then the other, then back again
as his mouth descends to my pussy. And the combination of the plug and his
tongue has me seeing stars as my eyes go out of focus.
“Hades…fuck, I—I’m—”
He starts to twist the plug faster, gently tugging on it as if he’s about to pull it
out of me, only to push it back in just as it starts to stretch me open again.
The feeling is unreal, and my world begins to melt as I drown in the pleasure
of it all.
His tongue on my clit. His fingers sliding into my pussy and stroking my g-
spot. The plug screwing in my ass. It all comes together like a symphony of
sin, and suddenly it hits me like a bomb going off.
I cry out, slamming my hand over my mouth as my back arches off the bed. I
shake and shudder, writhing and moaning under his tongue and fingers as the
blast of the orgasm rips through me.
I already feel so full with the plug in my ass. And he’s so big…
He rolls his hips, pushing his cock into me as my mouth goes slack.
Oh holy fuck.
I pant into his skin, kissing and biting his shoulder as he pounds into me
faster. One of his hands reaches down, and when he starts to twist and pull at
the plug again, a cry of pure ecstasy rips from my mouth.
Hades rams into me even harder, our bodies grinding together as heat
explodes across both of us. I cling to him, wrapping my legs around his
muscled hips and never wanting to let go.
“Hades…”
“Give me that cum, kitten,” he rasps against my lips. “Give me all the
fucking cum from this pretty little fucking pussy right the fuck now.”
The plug slips all the way out, then he instantly pushes it right back in at the
same time that his cock sinks balls-deep inside of me. And suddenly, my
world is blurring at the edges.
Hades groans, pushing even deeper into me as his cock throbs and pulses, and
I moan again when I feel the hot, wet spurts of his cum spilling into me.
I’m still shaking when he slowly pulls out of me and moves up next to me.
I’m barely able to breathe, let alone form words, as he circles his powerful
arms around me and pulls my back tight against his chest.
His lips graze the back of my neck as I tremble from head to toe.
“What did you want to tell me before?”
“Nothing,” I finally murmur, twisting in his arms to face him and those
blazing blue eyes. My lips curl into a smile. “Just that I really like you.”
I grin.
So does he.
My eyes grow heavy, and I’m not sure my cheek is even resting on his chest
before I fall asleep in his arms.
30
HADES
I groan, my hand in her hair pulling her mouth to mine so I can kiss her as my
cum spills deep inside her cunt. Her thighs clamp around my hips, her ankles
locked around my back with her panties still hanging off one heel.
Slowly, catching our breaths, I pull my head back. Elsa’s face is flushed
scarlet, and split by a huge grin. But her brow caves suddenly as she snaps
her gaze past me to the door of her office.
I only keep myself from saying “who the fuck cares” because it’ll throw her
into a tailspin. We probably were too loud, almost certainly. But I truly do
not give a fuck.
I’m completely off the deep end with her, and I have no intention of
swimming back to the edge of the pool any time soon.
We’re not even hiding this anymore. For two weeks now, I’ve been visiting
“my attorney” at her place of work just about every day, where we have a
closed-door meeting for a minimum of one hour.
Since the night that someone—“someone” almost certainly being Leo or one
of his goons—broke into her place, I’ve had Drakos men guarding her
building: two outside the front door, two by the back door, one on the roof,
and two more patrolling the halls on her floor.
But even with that, she’s been at my place a lot. At first, Nora stayed over
too, which I’m completely fine with because she’s a really cool kid. But once
Elsa accepted that her apartment was one of the safest places in the city with
my people guarding it, she pulled a few solo nights over here, with Nora
more than happily getting their apartment to herself.
I kiss her slowly before I grudgingly slide from the wet warmth of her sweet
little pussy. Without batting an eye, I pull her panties back up her legs and fit
them snugly against her cunt.
I want my cum staying right where it is. I want her to feel me slowly dripping
out of her for the rest of the day.
I want her panties to be sticky with it when she leaves work later, to remind
her of me.
Elsa’s mouth twists. “I’d love to come over. But I feel like I’m neglecting
Nora. She’s been up and out the door to school or practice without me like
three days in a row now.”
“Stay at your place then,” I growl, buttoning my shirt back up. “And we can
talk—”
“I mean, if you—”
“I do,” I growl. “Want to. Thought I’m supposed to meet up with Sean later
for a sparring round.”
She shrugs as she finishes adjusting her blouse and fixing her hair. “Come
over after, then?”
My phone rings just as I pull up. Glancing down, I spot Ares’ name on the
screen before I answer.
“What.”
“Office or apartment?”
“Apartment. And Hades? Watch your back. Someone’s trying to start a war.”
“On my way.”
H OLY SHIT .
My jaw grinds as I lean on the kitchen counter in Ares and Neve’s all-glass
penthouse overlooking the Hudson. But I’m not scoping the views right now.
I’m scowling over at where Castle is patching up a gash across Mike
Karagiannis’ forehead.
…A gash he received about an hour ago, when a crew smashed their way into
a warehouse of ours that he was guarding, cracked a bat over his head, and
made off with about two million dollars’ worth of black market high-end
electronics.
They left the other two million dollars’ worth of gear that was being stored
there smashed into smithereens.
“It’s not your fault, Mike,” Ares growls quietly, walking over to put a
comforting hand on the older man’s shaking shoulder.
That’s the difference between Ares and me, and it’s what makes him such a
great leader. If it were me, well, I doubt I’d be this calm. As it is, I’m barely
keeping it together, standing over here across the room.
One sixty-year-old man isn’t going to stop ten armed guys from doing shit.
The concerning thing isn’t just the theft or the vandalism, though. It’s that
someone even knew that the warehouse was worth hitting in the first place.
There are a couple of spots around this city where our family hides its
more… underground activities and products. Sometimes cash, too. And when
I say they’re hidden, they’re fucking hidden. That shit is locked down tight
on a strictly need-to-know basis.
“Tell us again what happened,” Ares mutters. “Try and focus on any small
details too, if you can.”
Mike nods, wincing as Castle finishes stitching up the gash in his forehead.
“I’d just done a round of the perimeter and was headed back to the office.
They came through the side door…used a plasma torch to cut the damn
hinges right off and come storming through like a bunch of commandos.”
“How many of them were there, again?”
Mike looks down. “Ten of ’em. I pulled my gun, Mr. Drakos, I swear—”
“No one’s doubting that, Mike,” my brother grunts. “We just want the
details.”
“They cracked me one good,” Mike sighs. “I winged one with my piece. But
they got me hard on the noggin. Then another one tied my arm to the radiator.
It was lucky I could use my foot to get the phone off the desk to call you
later. They went through the whole place like they knew exactly where
everything was. Grabbed probably half the merch and then went to town on
the rest with bats and tire-irons.”
Ares glances at me, then Kratos, before his eyes slide back on Mike.
“Okay, I want you to try and remember this all on your own, without me
prompting you. When you first called, you mentioned—”
“They were fuckin’ Russians, Mr. Drakos,” Mike growls. His eyes dart to
Neve. “Begging your pardon for the language, ma’am.”
“Fuck that,” Neve mutters back. “You’re sure they were Russian? Could’ve
been some other Balkan—”
“My ex-wife’s mother was Russian,” Mike grunts. “Trust me, I hear that shit
in my nightmares.”
Ares’ jaw clenches as his eyes lock with mine and Kratos’.
Castle, who was with Ares and Neve when Mike called, stays in the kitchen
with the wounded guard. Ares, Neve, and Kratos follow me out onto the glass
penthouse’s sprawling patio.
“It’s Gavan.”
“It was a clear shot across the bow, Ares,” I mutter. “A warning shot.”
“It wasn’t a big deal. I went to see him the other day about something, and
—”
“Bullshit, Hades,” he growls. “You went to see the head of the fucking
Reznikov Bratva—who, by the way, we’re still in a silent fucking bidding
war with over the Albanians. I don’t give a fuck if you were popping over to
have a fucking book club meeting with Gavan. When you see the head of that
organization, believe me, it’s business. And that means you tell me about it.”
I grit my teeth. “It might not be him. I’m just saying, things got heated, and
Gavan may have interpreted my visit as a threat.”
The door to the penthouse slides open. Castle clears his throat as he sticks his
head out.
“I just got a call from a buddy of mine from the VA. He works security over
at Mt. Sinai, and wanted to let me know that a known member of the
Reznikov organization just came in for stitches.” His eyes darken. “Bullet
graze, left shoulder, from a thirty-eight snub-nose. Same place Mike winged
one of them. Same gun.”
“I don’t know about you guys, but I think it’s getting chilly. I’d love to warm
my feet by a campfire tonight.”
Kratos nods his chin, folding his arms over his big chest. Castle grins.
“Do it. Pick something of similar value, and no loss of life, Hades. We’re not
trying to start World War Three here. But if Gavan wants to start fucking
around, it’s time to send a message of our own back.”
T WO HOURS LATER , my feet are getting plenty toasty next to a fire that’s
soaring into the fucking heavens. Gavan’s four men who were guarding this
particular Reznikov warehouse are bound, gagged, and blindfolded, tied up
on a pier that juts out over the East River.
I glance at Kratos and nod, clinking my beer to his before turning and doing
the same to Castle’s.
“You didn’t have to involve yourself in this, you know,” I grunt at him.
The three of us stand there watching the fire curl and snarl up at the heavens
before we hear the sounds of sirens approaching.
Time to go.
31
ELSA
I STIR SLIGHTLY awake when I feel his weight sinking onto the bed.
I grin, my eyes still closed as Hades slides in next to me and pulls me into his
arms. Then my nose wrinkles a little.
I was expecting him to be coming fresh from boxing practice. And while he’s
clearly just showered, probably in my shower, it’s not the sweat of a workout
I can still smell lingering on him.
It’s smoke.
I don’t need to ask about this. If he wants to tell me, he will. Yes, there are
things about him that might scare me. But he is who he is, and I like that.
I like that, and him, so much. In fact, there are other words I should probably
be using instead of “like”.
“Nothing, why?”
“I need you to come to the family and friends soft opening for The Banshee
that Callie, Eilish, and Neve are throwing.”
“What?”
“You…you’re serious?”
“Very.”
“I really am.”
He sighs, leaning close and kissing me softly. “I think I’m fucking sick of
pretending you’re not the first person I want to talk to in the morning and the
last person I want to see before I go to sleep.”
“H EY !”
My face splits into a grin when I answer the phone, the sound of Elsa’s voice
making my very skin tingle like it always does these days.
“So, I’m afraid I’m running a teensy bit late in terms of the soft opening
tonight,” she sighs. “I’m just finishing up a deposition in Brooklyn. But quick
question, is that blue dress of mine at your place?”
It’s almost surreal. I’m actually having the “whose house is that piece of
clothing at” conversation with a woman for the first time in my life. And I
fucking love that I’m having it with her.
Yes, her dress is at my place—still there from the night last week where she
rode my cock on the kitchen floor before I fucked her bent over the counter.
“It is, yeah.”
“Oh, wait, yes, I think I wore it the night…” she trails off, and I can
practically feel the heat of her blush through the phone.
“Go on.”
She laughs quietly. “I think we both know which night that was,” she
murmurs.
“Oh, we totally do, I just want to hear you say it out loud.”
“Deal. Do you think I could stop by your place and grab it before I head
home to change? I think I’d like to wear it tonight.”
“Here’s a better idea: just get ready at my place and I’ll come give you a ride
to the soft opening after I finish helping the girls with the last of the setup
here.”
“Really?”
“Yeah.”
“Then do it. Get ready at my place and I’ll call you when I’m on the way.
Deal?”
“Yeah, see you soon. Lo—” she stops short, clearing her throat. “Right. See
you soon.”
She hangs up abruptly. I’m grinning ear-to-ear as I slip the phone into my
pocket and turn to head back into The Banshee, where there is a fair amount
of setup still to do.
Callie steps right in front of me, giving me one of her patented “I’m about to
give you shit about something” looks of hers.
“Yes?”
I shrug. “Nobody.”
She shakes her head, turning to walk away. “Whatever, fine. Keep your
secrets.”
Fuck it.
Callie’s eyebrows shoot so far up they almost disappear into her hairline.
Eilish grins impishly.
I flip her off as she and Eilish snicker. “Well, just don’t be a bag of dicks
about it.”
I turn, grinning when I see Sean lugging three huge cases of liquor bottles
into the bar from a van outside.
“Why the fuck is everyone making this so weird,” I grumble, turning to head
out the door.
Sean follows me out, helping me lug a few more cases of stuff into the bar
before I see a familiar black town car pull up in front of the building. I head
to the curb, opening the passenger door and helping my grandmother out.
She beams at the newly remodeled front of the Irish pub that her
granddaughter, Eilish, and Neve are about to open.
“Not hard to believe at all, Hades. She’s a Drakos, after all. A Dragon. The
blood of the Spartans—”
Not the Spartans again. “Hey, Ya-ya?” I clear my throat. “I, uh, wanted to
tell you something.”
“Oh?”
“But she’s very smart, very pretty, and quite intimidating,” she finishes for
me, grinning at my confused look. “And British.”
“I’m old, Hades. Not blind, or stupid. And I think she’ll be very good for
you.”
“Good,” she beams. “Good. She should be part of this. We can toast to your
sister, and your sisters-in-law, and to falling in love, and having lots of
babies.”
“Gamóto,” she suddenly gasps, frowning as she turns. “I left my bag in the
car.”
“Hades!” Callie stops me on my way out. “Where’s this hot date of yours?”
I roll my eyes. “Let me get Ya-ya’s bag, then I’m going to get her.”
She grins. “Good. And hey…” She lifts a shoulder and smiles. “I’m really
happy for you, you know.”
I give her a hug, kissing the top of her head. “Thanks. And I’m really proud
of you.” I raise my eyes, looking around the brand-new pub. “This place is
insane, Cals. And you did this.”
She beams.
“Okay, let me get that bag, then, you and I are drinking.”
I head out, clapping Sean on the back as slips past me into The Banshee
carrying in the last box of liquor. I find Ya-ya’s bag on the back seat of the
town car, and I’m turning back to the pub with a grin on my face when the
blast shatters the world.
The explosion punches out the windows and blows the door off The Banshee,
slamming me back against the car so hard I see stars as I drop to my hands
and knees.
No.
I stagger to my feet, my eyes wide in horror and a ringing sound echoing in
my ears. It’s all I can hear as I stumble like a drunk toward the gaping black
maw that not four seconds ago was the front of my sister’s beautiful new pub.
NO.
I start to run, heedless of the shards of glass and flaming bits of wood raining
down around me. Heedless of the blood pouring down my face. Heedless of
anything as I charge into the burning wreckage.
The white noise of distant screaming and faint sirens. The frantic and yet
numbing task of clawing through rubble and fire, heedless of the way it’s
burning the skin from my hands. The roaring sound that I finally realize is my
own voice when the firefighters try and pull me out of the wreckage of the
Banshee.
It’s finally Castle that manages to do that, and he does it in his own way: by
punching me in the face. It’s probably the only way I’d have ever left that
smoking black hole.
It dazes me and quiets the monster raging within me enough that he can drag
me from the smoldering building and shove me against the side of a car. Then
he physically yanks my head to the side to show me where they’re loading
my grandmother, my sister, and Eilish Kildare into the backs of three
ambulances.
That sets me off again, roaring and screaming pure, blind rage and hatred at
the sky as Castle forcibly throws me into the back of his car as the scent of
death curls into the air around us.
Callie is already up and moving around. Eilish is going to be okay once she’s
out of surgery to remove the pieces of shrapnel in her shoulder and her leg.
Our grandmother, miraculously, is okay, fuck knows how. They’re keeping
her for observation, despite her protests, because they want to watch for
internal bleeding from the hit she took. But she’s okay.
The firefighters are saying it looks like he took the brunt of the blast when he
used his body to shield my sister and my grandmother from the worst of it.
They’re calling him a hero. And that’s fucking great and all, but I don’t want
to eulogize a hero.
I want to thank my fucking friend for what he did and then go buy him a
beer.
I grit my teeth against my brother’s shoulder and take a deep breath before I
pull away, my face grim.
Neve blinks back tears as she comes over to hug me, shaking as she clings to
me. When she pulls back to sink into my brother’s arms, I turn to survey the
scene in the hospital waiting room around me.
The faces and clothes streaked with ash and grime. The wounds, like the gash
on my head, that aren’t big enough for anyone here to give a shit about right
now. Not while Dimitra is being monitored for internal bleeding and Eilish is
having pieces of her pub surgically removed from her body.
And then there’s the anger. And even though it’s simmering below the
surface, it’s plain to see on everyone’s faces: Ares, Neve, Kratos, Castle,
Cillian and Una.
With me, the anger’s not so much under the surface. It’s about to explode
outward with a force that’ll make what just happened at The Banshee look
like a cheap bottle rocket.
And it was a bomb. Castle’s just gotten off the phone with the Fire Marshall,
who confirmed it. Not a gas leak. Not an act of God.
A fucking bomb.
They’re saying it was wired up under the downstairs lounge bar, purposefully
put in that central location so as to do the maximum damage to both the
downstairs lounge and the bar above it, where most of our family was.
They’re saying it was a relatively complex IED, too. One that took time to set
up.
They’re also saying that while the security camera hard drives have
obviously been reduced to molten slag, the off-site logs show that the back
door to the place was opened using a security code late last night.
Someone tried to murder our family. And they damn well almost succeeded.
I turn away, yanking my phone out to try calling Elsa again. But same as
before, it goes straight to voicemail.
I’m not worried. Well, not that worried. My building is far more secure than
it looks, despite all that glass. Plus, I sent three of our men over to guard the
place, without worrying Elsa, while I was on the way here to the hospital.
I text George, one of the men I sent over there, just to check in. His instant
“all good over here” reply has me exhaling slowly.
“There’s no reason to keep quiet about it,” Neve chokes tightly, shaking her
head at my brother. “We’re all thinking the same thing anyway.”
“Fine.”
The waiting room is full of nothing but Kildare and Drakos people anyway,
and this obviously concerns both families. Ares exhales slowly, his eyes
dragging to Cillian.
Cillian nods stonily. “He does. He’s on a plane right now from Chicago.”
Ares shakes his head. “I’m so fucking sorry, Cil. Sean was a good man. And
they’re saying he saved Callie and Ya-ya’s lives. I know Dom won’t give a
flying fuck about that right now, and that’s fine. But I want him to know that.
Eventually.”
The Irishman nods quietly. “He’ll know.”
Ares grits his teeth as his eyes slowly sweep the room.
“There’s no easy way to put this. But we’re all thinking it anyway, so fuck
it.” He pauses. “Someone just declared war on us. It could very well be the
Russians, but before any of us, or any of the vassal families, goes out there
and starts waging World War Three in the streets of Manhattan, we’re going
to be goddamn sure it is. Can we please agree to that?”
“I can tell our people to stand down.” His eyes harden. “For now. But my
niece is in surgery, Ares. And there’s a limit to my patience when it comes to
holding off on retaliation.”
“Fair enough. If anyone has favors owed them, call them the fuck in, now.”
Oren and I have only spoken once before, a few weeks ago. I’d almost
forgotten I’d called him and asked him to do what I did. Now, amidst the
chaos of all this, it seems so fucking petty and stupid.
Elsa.
I asked him to look into Elsa, and I’ve spent the last three weeks regretting it
every time she’s smiled at me or kissed me.
“I’m not some yellow pages private detective, Hades. Nor am I unaware of
the intricate politics involved with people like yourself and families such as
your own when I do work for them. I’m fully versed in the dynamics of your
family, and Cillian’s, as well as of those who you both might call enemies.
Which is why I struggled with even calling you right now.”
He exhales slowly. “Her background is clean. Mom died when she was
eighteen and her sister was seven. They were pretty poor, but she worked two
jobs—interning at a law firm, running coffees, making copies, that sort of
thing, and also running the back office for a local grocery store. She managed
to get herself into no less than Cambridge, where she was top of her class, all
while playing mother to her little sister, Nora.”
I already know all of this. It still makes me grin with foolish pride, even if the
world is burning around me. But I’m not sure where he’s going with any of
this, or how it’s remotely relevant to any of what’s going on.
“Oren—”
“The reason I’m calling right now, and the reason I truly wrestled with this,
Hades,” he growls, “isn’t because of how smart she is, or how driven, or the
blood and sweat it took for her to get to where she and her sister are right
now. I’m calling you because of who her father is.”
“And he is?”
Oren is silent.
“Oren—”
“Stavrin.”
“Leo Stavrin. I’d tell you who he is, but I know you already know. And given
this evening’s events, that’s why I wasn’t so sure about calling.”
“Thank you.”
“Look, Hades—”
“That’s all I need,” I say in a voice that sounds like the edge of a knife.
“Thank you, Oren.”
I hang up. In a trance, my face a mask of pure, livid rage, I turn and start to
walk for the door.
“Out of my way.”
With a furious roar I explode, shoving him back as I yank the gun from the
holster under my jacket.
“Tell me what the fuck is going on, man,” he growls. “I can’t help you if you
don’t—”
“I am going to deal with something, Ares,” I snarl. “That’s all you need to
know.”
He shakes his head, Castle and Kratos moving behind him, eyeing me and the
gun warily.
“You’re not going after Gavan fucking Tsarenko by yourself, brother,” Ares
growls quietly. “Let us settle things here, and then you and I, and the rest of
us, can all go knock down Gavan’s—”
The room is silent after my voice booms through it. Ares and I lock eyes.
Then, slowly, he dips his chin in a slow nod. He steps away, letting me surge
past him and out the door like an avenging angel of death.
I’m going after the little fucking spy who’s been playing me like a goddamn
idiot. The little blonde traitor who’s had me wrapped around her fucking
finger while she fed intel to the enemy.
That first night, when I was so caught up in realizing that the girl from Club
Venom was Elsa that I didn’t focus on the part where she was leaving Leo’s
place at one in the morning.
I think of all the times I was so stupidly cavalier with her. All the times I left
my phone open around her, or chatted away to Ares with her in earshot.
Plotting to destroy me and mine, all while slowly breaking down every wall I
have. And now someone is dead—a friend is dead—and my grandmother and
basically my sister-in-law are still in the hospital because I got careless with
my feelings.
The car mounts the curb outside my building as I come to a screeching stop.
My eyes dart to the van across the street with “Athenian Dry-Cleaning”
stenciled on the side of it, which is my guy George and his crew.
I storm over there to tell them to scatter—to get the fuck out of here before I
start shooting. When I get to the van, I frown.
It’s empty.
What the fuck is going on?
Suddenly, something catches my eye: liquid, dripping from the side sliding
door of the van.
It’s blood.
Pulse racing, I yank open the sliding door, and instantly grit my teeth.
Fuck me.
George and the two other guys I sent are dead in a heap on the floor of the
van, all with their throats cut.
I don’t think. I just whirl, bolting across the street, smashing in the keypad
code to my building, then bolting up the stairs through the unfinished floors
until I get to the top.
I can’t tell if I want her to be there so that I can kill her with my bare hands,
or if I’m hoping she’s gone so I don’t have to.
So I don’t have to kill the woman I love for being instrumental in the death of
my friend, and in almost killing my family.
I tear through the house, looking under every bed and in every closet. But the
place is empty.
Her clothes are missing from my closet. The toothbrush she left here a few
weeks ago is gone.
Anger is a drug that’ll restart your heart if it stops. It’ll keep you going when
you just want to fall down and die. It’ll sustain you when you’re too broken
and fucked up to eat, drink, even sleep—at least, for a time.
Maybe forever. So far I’m on day five of running on pure anger, and I don’t
remember the last time I did any of those things, so who the fuck knows.
Since the blast ripped through The Banshee, my world has upended. On the
plus side, Callie is healing and Ya-ya was cleared to leave the hospital. She’s
doing okay aside from a bunch of painful bruising she took in the explosion.
Eilish is on bed rest at Mt. Sinai, but she’s going to be back home at the
Kildare brownstone in just a few days.
It started the night of the bombing, when the Russians went on full lockdown.
When we got reports the next day of more Reznikov muscle being flown in
from Europe and Russia, the defcon meter moved a little higher.
Then, three days ago, a laundromat that’s a front for an underground high-
stakes casino run by one of our vassal families went up in flames. The next
day, Kratos and I blew a hole in the keel of one of the mid-sized yachts
Gavan owns and keeps moored at Chelsea Piers Marina, sending it to the
bottom of the Hudson.
And this morning, the expected return shot came, in the form of one of Ezio
Adamos’ construction projects getting shut down by Homeland Security
because of “personnel security concerns”.
Guess which fucking Russian bathhouse the head of the New York division
of Homeland Security has a membership to.
The good thing is, though, when you’re mainlining anger, you don’t have
time to be sad. To feel the way your heart is shattering inside of you.
Betrayal stings. Losing the woman you were ready to hand your whole
goddamn soul to is a motherfucker.
But anger? Anger’s got your back. Anger will smother the whole fucking
thing, until all you can taste is bitter rage, and all you breathe is revenge.
Well, currently, it’s actually more a mix of revenge, gun-oil, and the plasticky
scent of body armor fresh out of its packaging.
There’s also about twenty other Drakos men and another fifteen from the
Kildare side, all of us strapping on body armor and loading up magazines. In
about forty-five minutes, the hounds of war are about to get loosed from their
chains.
“Hades.”
“Yeah?”
My jaw tightens.
“I mean…” he clears his throat. “If she’s working with Leo, there’s a chance
she’ll be there when we—”
Without another word, I go back to coldly pushing rounds into the magazine
in my hands.
“Guys?”
We all turn at the sound of Callie’s voice to see a fierce, hard look in her
eyes.
I sigh. “If you’re here to talk us down from this, you’re wasting your fucking
—”
“Oh, you mean all of this?” She snaps, nodding her chin past me. “This
insanity?”
Ares looks up, frowning. “This is the game, Callie. When someone comes for
you or hurts you, you make them hurt. I don’t want a fucking war with
Gavan. But what I want or don’t want doesn’t matter when he’s the one that
just bombed Pearl Harbor. We’re in this now.”
He sighs heavily, shoving his fingers through his hair.
“I need you to for once listen to me!!!” she snaps. Callie bristles, stepping
closer to the four of us as her throat bobs. “I also need you to come upstairs.”
“Why,” I growl.
“Because Vanya Mirzoyan just showed up at our door, and you really need to
fucking listen to her.”
I’ VE SPENT the last five days drenched in anger. Bathing in it. Feeding on it,
and becoming its closest friend. So when I see that same vicious emotion
carved into Vanya’s face when we walk into one of Dimitra’s sitting rooms,
it gives me pause.
Ares grimaces. “I owe your father a phone call, I know, apologies. But
there’s a bigger issue at—”
“You’re going to war with the Reznikovs,” she says coldly. “Yes, I know.”
“And I think you might be going to war with the wrong people.”
“Excuse me?”
“My father is a liar,” she spits, her eyes darting from me, to Ares, to Kratos,
to Castle, to Callie.
“With pleasure,” she hisses venomously. “My father decided to spend the last
three months telling me he was dying of fucking cancer. That that is why he
wanted to make this deal happen, so that my brother and I would have more
money than we’d ever know what to do with once he was gone.”
My jaw grinds. “What do you mean, he’s been telling you he has cancer?”
“Oh, should I be clearer?” she snaps, shaking with anger. “I mean he’s been
lying to me. I just found out that he’s not sick at all. The bastard’s completely
fine. He’s just been using me as a fucking pawn to push that message.”
“Yeah, well, I’m done. I’m done playing the ditzy mob princess daughter for
him. I’m also done being his chess piece. And I’m really done pretending that
all I want in the world is for some big macho he-man to come marry me and
put me in a goddamn ivory tower somewhere. Because all of that is fucking
furthest thing from what I actually want!”
She looks away, raking her fingers through her long hair. “I have an
undergraduate degree and a master’s degrees in business from goddamn
Harvard, for fuck’s sake!”
She smiles bitterly and shakes her head, looking away like she hasn’t heard
me.
“No,” Ares growls. “But I think I’d very much like to.”
Her eyes narrow to murderous slits. “It comes in handy when your lying
asshole of a father has been having regular meetings, both in person and over
the phone, with Leo Stavrin. In. Fucking. Russian.”
“I wasn’t happy about it. But I was willing to keep his secrets and let him
play his little games, because I was focused on my own exit. But that was
before he lied to me about dying, and before people started to get hurt.
Before…”
She shakes her head, brushing a tear away from her eyes. Callie moves
towards Vanya as if to comfort her. But the Albanian woman shakes her
head, holding a hand up.
“No, let me finish. Please.” She swallows, sniffing back the tears. “I don’t
know what they’re planning. I honestly don’t. But Leo and my father are
working together. Not Gavan as well,” she quickly adds. “I mean just Leo,
with just my father.”
“Oh, and I’d bail on this deal you’re so hellbent on working out with my
dad.”
Vanya’s lips twist. “There’s a sub-basement under the main office of that
parking garage you’ve got your eye on.” She smiles wryly. “The one you
think is going to get rezoned.”
“Or, should I say, is going to get rezoned,” Vanya continues. “Believe me, he
knows all about that.”
I frown. “So why on earth would he be willing to sell it to us for the price on
the table?”
“Because it’s not the deal of the century you think it is.” She swallows. “I
don’t know exactly what it is, but I’ve heard them discussing something
that’s in that basement that’ll kill any development deal. He’s selling you a
lemon.”
“My father is not a good man, Hades. And he has not forgotten the bad blood
between your family and ours, or between Gavan’s and ours.”
She sighs heavily. “Because I never asked to be born into this life, and I don’t
want it.”
I frown. “Okay, but you telling us all of this is a bit more than giving the
middle finger to your old man, Vanya. This could—and probably will—have
consequences for you…”
“He fired her, got her visa revoked, and had her deported back to Ukraine.”
Her face shatters. “She was killed by a Russian bomb outside Bakhmut last
night. I just found out.”
Jesus.
“He killed her. So, Hades?” Her voice is like broken glass as she looks at me
with tear-filled eyes. “There already have been ‘consequences’ for me. It’s
his fucking turn now.”
She pulls her phone out, her face a mask of livid anger as she taps on it. Mine
buzzes in my pocket.
“Watch that.”
The video she’s just sent me is blurry and shaky. But it’s pretty obvious what
it shows: Serj Mirzoyan and Leo fucking Stavrin, along with the late and
unlamented Pascha Andreev, talking on what must be Serj’s back garden
patio.
“Then allow me,” she hisses thinly. “They’re talking about starting a war
between the Reznikovs and the Drakos-Kildare alliance. Serj is giving them a
list of potential targets, including a warehouse full of stolen high-end
electronics that belongs to your family. Pascha is talking about plans to start
using violence on the streets against the children of Kildare and Drakos
vassal families, made out to look like Reznikov Bratva aggression.”
Fuck. Me.
My mind flashes to poor Theo Petrakis getting lit on fire with Russian vodka,
and Nick Eliades losing his prestigious spot on the Cornell hockey team after
getting beaten to shit.
“They want to stoke the anger between you and the Russians, until you’re all
forced into open war. When it gets bad, my father’s plan is to pretend to side
with you, to get close, while Leo will cozy up to Gavan. At a certain point,
they’ll both make moves to kill their respective kings—Gavan by Leo’s hand,
and you, Ares—along with Cillian Kildare if possible—by my father’s.”
“Your father left a message for me this morning, actually,” he hisses quietly.
“Asking how he could help with the mounting hostilities between our family
and the Reznikovs.”
Fuck.
“That handshake is Leo and my father agreeing to split the spoils once both
empires are up in flames.” Vanya’s face is lined as she looks up at me. “You
do not want to go to war with the Russians, believe me. You’re all being
played.”
A N HOUR LATER , Ares, Kratos, Castle and I are using a crowbar to break
down the door to the sub-basement under Serj’s parking garage at nine-fifty-
two Lincoln Place. Kratos hits the light switch on the wall, and a string of
construction site bulbs illuminates an old staircase that leads down to what
looks like an earthen floor basement.
“The fuck is this?” Ares mutters as we all carefully descend the stairs.
It’s mostly full of nothing but old boxes. But at the far wall, there’s a plastic
curtain drawn across a black hole. I frown, yanking it back and peering into
the darkness beyond.
I shake my head. Just then, Ares steps forward, turns on the flashlight on his
phone, and shines it into the darkness.
Woah.
The first thing I see is the skeletons—old ones, too, from the looks of it,
covered in dust and dirt. Past them, there are two honest-to-God cannons, and
a giant pile of huge-ass cannonballs.
“What the fuck?” Castle mutters. “This shit looks like it’s been here for a
century.”
“This says all of this was discovered six months ago while they were trying
to expand the sub-basement. It’s an old storage house from the Revolutionary
War.”
“Mother. Fucker!” Ares groans, turning and kicking a piece of rock across
the dirt floor. “It’s a fucking historical preservation site. Rezoned or not, it
can’t be developed.”
“Thank you.”
The four of us whirl, yanking guns out at the sound of the voice behind us.
And he’s not alone. There’s four of us, but Gavan’s brought three times that,
and every gun in every Russian hand is currently pointed straight at us.
Tsarenko smiles, cracking his neck as he too raises a gleaming gun in his
tattooed hand.
“Thank you for saving me the trouble of digging you all a grave.”
35
ELSA
A LL I KNOW IS DARKNESS .
Lurking.
Shivering, I pull close to Nora, glancing down at her as she sleeps. In the
near-total darkness of the place that has been our prison for the last five days,
I can barely make her out against the blackness that envelops us like ink. But
I can hear her breathing.
I know it’s night-time, because the train I occasionally hear rumble by not too
far away hasn’t been past in a while. During the day, it’s more like every
hour, which suggests it might be a commuter train of some kind.
It could be a train full of cops, for all it matters. I blew my voice out the first
day we were here, screaming and screaming for help.
Not here.
My blood runs cold at the sudden metallic scraping sound of the door to the
basement room opening. It wrenches inward on rusty hinges, and I wince at
the blinding stab of light that hits me. It’s just a single bulb on the other side,
but after five days in the blackness, my eyes sting at the sudden glare.
I shiver violently and peer as hard as I can, but even so, when I look at the
door, all I see is the darkness of his silhouette with the light stabbing past him
like knives.
I swallow. “Both of us. I’ll do whatever you want,” I choke. “But both of us
come out of this room.”
I can just barely make out his foot tapping on the floor.
He turns to go, but then stops, his silhouette twisting back to look at me
again.
“Soon, we’ll laugh about this, Elsa. Soon, this will all be an amusing story we
tell at parties.”
The door shuts with another metallic clank, and the sob I’ve been desperately
holding back in front of him bursts from my throat.
Nora stirs next to me, and I turn to pull her head into my lap as I drop mine
against the stone wall behind me.
Please.
Find me.
36
HADES
Gavan smiles coolly. “Want has very little to do with it. You’ve chosen a
path against me, Hades, simple as that. All of you have.”
Ares licks his lips, trying to remain calm. “Gavan, you need to listen—”
“I outgun you three-to-one, and that’s before the twenty other men I have
upstairs. So, no, Ares,” he rasps coldly, “I don’t need to do a goddamn thing.
Lower your guns. All of you.”
I glance at my brothers and Castle. Ares gives a quick nod of his chin.
Gavan smiles again. “Yes, I thank you for so conveniently leading me to you
and walking into a hole in the earth without any other men with you. You’ve
made erasing your empire from the face of the fucking planet so much easier
for me.”
I gesture behind me, to the gaping hole in the wall. Gavan frowns, turning
and nodding at one of his men. The guy steps forward, shining his phone
flashlight into the darkness.
“A Revolutionary War era weapons cache, along with the remains of the men
who were guarding it.”
He stiffens.
“It means this whole fucking garage is a historical preservation site, and Serj
is fully aware of that.”
“He’s fucking playing all of us, Gavan. And the deal is just the beginning.
Here.”
“Slowly.”
I slip the phone out of my back pocket, unlock it, and hand it to him.
“It’s the most recent video in my camera roll. Make sure the volume is up.”
Gavan’s face is impassive as he plucks the phone from my hand and clicks on
my camera reel. Suddenly, the sound of Leo and Serj speaking in Russian
fills the dirt room.
I see the rage and the realization of the betrayal creep over him as he watches
the video in its entirety, twice. Then a third time.
“Well?”
“No,” he growls. “It doesn’t. Though it might explain my top avtoritet being
missing for the last four or five days.”
He swears viciously under his breath in Russian. Then he turns to level his
gaze at the four of us.
Around him, his men gradually lower and holster their guns. Gavan draws in
a slow breath.
“You won’t.”
Gavan raises a brow. “Duly noted. I will admit… I did torch your casino.”
“Enough.” Ares shakes his head, holding his hands up. “We can play this
game all day. Who shot first, who did more damage. It doesn’t matter. This
was all a setup, and we’ve all been playing right into Serj and Leo’s fucking
hands. They want us to burn each other’s empires to the fucking ground, so
they can paw through the ashes.”
“I’m choosing to believe you about The Banshee bombing. I hope I never
find out that I’m wrong.”
“And being that all of this was set in motion by someone who is clearly a
common enemy, I’m prepared to forget about the shot-for-shots regarding
each other’s property. No lives were lost on our end.”
“So we don’t have to go to war. We don’t have to be best friends, either, but
we don’t need this to go nuclear.”
Ares glances at Kratos and me. When we both nod, he turns back to the
Russian and shakes his hand.
“Same.”
“I’ll talk to Cillian,” Castle growls. “But consider the Kildares standing down
as well.”
“Now, are we going to flip a coin to see who gets to skin Serj Mirzoyan
alive?”
“M—M R . D RAKOS ?”
I pause in the hallway of the long-term recovering wing of Mt. Sinai hospital.
Frowning at the sound of a voice I recognize, I turn to peer into the open
doorway of the room beside me.
He shrugs. “It’s okay. The skin grafts itch like hell, but it’s all healing pretty
well. And, hey, my dad came by this morning and told me the good news.
We’re not going to war with the Bratva?”
I smirk, nodding. “Fair enough. But no, there’s no war. We’ve dialed it back.
It’s all settled.”
I nod.
In the last twelve hours, a lot of things have been settled. First and foremost,
no, the Drakos-Kildare alliance will not be shooting it out in the streets with
Gavan’s people. All parties on both sides have been informed, and a total
cease to any hostilities has been issued.
Gavan did end up flipping a coin in that sub-basement. He even won the toss,
too. But he’s not going to be skinning Serj alive.
Apparently, he and Melik got into a heated argument about the pending sale
of the empire. They were both drunk, and when Melik drew a piece on his
own father, meant only to intimidate him, it discharged, blowing a hole in
Serj’s gut. At which point, Papa Mirzoyan pulled his own gun out, and shot
his kid in the chest. Which sounds cold as fuck, unless you’d ever met Melik.
Both Serj and Melik bled out before anyone found them, and now Vanya is
the new head of the Albanian family. It’s currently a big fat “to be
determined” what she does with it.
“That’s great to hear,” I sigh. “Look, Theo, I didn’t mean to come down so
hard on you that time at Nora Guin’s apartment. Your dad’s an okay guy, and
I know you’re a good kid. I just want you to know that.”
He smiles. “Nah, I get it. It must have looked super sketch. But honestly, Mr.
Drakos, I wasn’t, like, trying to get with Nora. Nick wasn’t, either. We really
were just wanting to chill and hang out. Seriously.”
I nod, my brow furrowing. “Have you talked to her recently? Nora, I mean.”
Elsa hasn’t been seen since the night of the bombing. According to her
building super, she hasn’t been to her apartment, and when I dropped by
Crown and Black, her friend Fumi told me she was on vacation, after giving
me an earful about not hurting her friend.
It’s a thought that keeps me up at night, twisting me back and forth: whether I
do want to find Elsa, to wreak my vengeance on her, or if I never want to set
eyes on her again, so I don’t have to do that.
Because if I do find her, I will. There’s no question about that. Elsa’s the one
who was feeding info to Leo. Elsa is the one who knew about our hidden
warehouses, and the passcode for the back door of The Banshee.
Presumably, she’s with her fucking father somewhere, given than no one can
find either one of them. But something doesn’t sit well with me about her
having brought Nora along for the ride as well. Because I checked her school
and her ballet class—she’s been missing since that night, too.
“Nora?” Theo shrugs. “Probably having the time of her life on a beach in
Thailand.”
I stiffen. “What?”
“She’s in Thailand. At least that’s what her last TikTok said. She and her
sister are there island-hopping for like a month-long vacation.”
Jesus Christ. At Crown and Black, Fumi only mentioned that Elsa was on
vacation. Even Alistair, when pressed, too, didn’t seem to know where she’d
gone. Only that she’d cashed in a bunch of vacation days that they were all
too happy to give her, seeing as she’s their new darling lawyer over there.
“Thailand.”
Outside in the hallway, my eyes blaze with fury. Before I know what I’m
doing, I duck into an empty waiting room and yank out my phone.
It’s a mutually beneficial arrangement, and Cillian’s made it clear not to rock
that boat even in the slightest.
But I need to know this, and I need to know it now.
“Remember the time my brother took a fucking bullet, and we let you take
the credit for killing the bad guy, which, if I recall correctly, gave you the
promotion of a lifetime? Remember that?”
“Fucking great. Now can you or fucking can’t you look up the locations of
two passports.”
“I’m the Director of New York City Operations for the fucking FBI, Hades,”
he mutters. “What the hell do you think?” He sighs again. “Okay. Names?”
“Hang on.”
The line goes silent but for the clicking of a keyboard. Then, he swears.
“What?”
“And it creates serious fucking issues if we’re spending our time spying on
the whereabouts of citizens of one of our biggest allies, if not the biggest,” he
snaps.
I fight to keep my cool. “Shane, I’ve never asked you for shit. But I really
need this.”
“I can’t, Hades. I can’t fucking tell you where they are for about fifteen
different legal and international treaty reasons.” He sighs. “But, I can tell you
where they are not.”
Shane sighs. “I have to go, Hades. I can’t touch this with a mile-long pole.”
Why is Nora Guin telling her friends she’s in Thailand, when neither she nor
Elsa has left the country?
E ILISH , the actual reason I came to Mt. Sinai today, smiles as I step into her
private room.
I shrug, taking the lid off a pitcher of water on her bedside table and putting
the flowers into it.
“Hades…”
I glance at Eilish. Her brow is furrowed, her mouth twisted with words she’s
not sure about saying out loud.
“She did,” I growl. “And I know that’s not a pleasant or convenient truth, and
I know it fucking stings, believe me, I do,” I snarl. “But it is what it fucking
is. She betrayed us all.”
“Yeah, and I refused to believe that my older brother Atlas was telling the
truth when he told me Santa wasn’t real when I was six. But, ho-ho-fucking-
ho.”
“She’s the reason you’re in here, Eilish,” I growl. “She’s the fucking reason
Sean is—”
Yes, Sean was a good friend of mine. But he was also like a cousin to Eilish
and Neve.
Her mouth goes small. “It’s okay,” she murmurs. “I’m coming to the service
next week.”
“Want a ride?”
Eilish rolls her eyes. “Honestly? A decent cup of coffee. They’ve been
limiting me to one cup in the morning, but that’s like a quarter of my usual
intake, and I’m losing it.”
I get up to leave the room. As I brush past the door to Eilish’s ensuite
bathroom, the gym bag that was hanging on the doorknob falls off. When I
turn to pick it up, I freeze.
“No, you’re not crazy,” Eilish says quietly. “It’s Elsa’s, I know.” She shrugs.
“She left it by accident when she came over a few days before”…her face
darkens…“you know, what happened. I guess Neve thought it was mine and
packed it with my stuff to bring here.”
I swallow, unable to tear my eyes from the bag I’ve seen in Elsa’s office over
a dozen times. In her bedroom.
In mine.
“You know how I know she didn’t do any of this?” Eilish says quietly.
A metallic beeping sound chirps through the room. When my brows knit as I
glance at the gym bag on the ground, Eilish sighs.
“Yeah, it did that twice yesterday. Once this morning, too. It just beeps like
that. But I’m pretty sure the bag’s empty. Maybe it’s like fob for the front
door to her gym or something?”
My frown deepens as I lean down to pick up the bag. Eilish is right: it’s
totally empty. No smart watch, no gym fob, no anything like that that might
be the source of the beeps. My eyes scan it inside and out, my hands running
over the nylon material.
Suddenly, I go still.
There is something in the bag. It’s just not inside the bag.
My pulse thuds as I grab my knife out of my back pocket and flick it open.
“Hades?” Eilish peers at me like I’m insane. “What the hell are you—”
I slice open the lining of the bag just as the beep goes off again. My fingers
close around the little metallic disc as I pull it out and hold it up into the light.
A small round circuit board, with a tiny wire, like an antenna, sticking out of
it. And a little black circle glued to the back.
A microphone.
Someone’s had Elsa’s gym bag bugged. And when my eyes land on the
letters printed right above the small watch battery on the circuit board, my
whole world goes numb.
It says “battery”.
In Russian.
“What is that?”
“What?”
I hand it to her. Eilish twists it in her hands, her brows furrowing as she peers
at it. “The writing on this is Russian.”
I nod.
“Then why the fuck were they bugging her goddamn gym bag,” I finish.
Elsa took this bag everywhere. My house. Her apartment. In locker rooms,
and bathrooms. All places she’d never knowingly bring a hot microphone.
Her drive. The way she’s been married to her job her whole life. The
carefully hammered armor around her emotions and her heart. The way it’s
always seemed, since the first day I met her, that Elsa was the type of person
who was constantly moving forward, because there was no way backward.
But I’m suddenly realizing it wasn’t because she was hungry for tomorrow.
Holy fuck.
Maybe she is Leo’s kid. But I’ve been blinded so completely by my rage that
I’ve overlooked the obvious.
She came to New York for a new job—a new life. And then Leo dropped in
less than a month later.
She was so cagey about her motives that night at Club Venom—why she
went there that night to, come hell or high water, lose her virginity.
Oh shit.
“And he’s angry about a girl. There was a marriage proposal recently
concerning the daughter of a would-be ally that is no longer favorable to a
traditional man like my son.”
Holy shit.
The would-be-ally was fucking Leo. And Elsa was the goddamn marriage
trophy. Her fucking me and losing her virginity that night was to torpedo that
arrangement.
She didn’t go to Leo’s place that night afterward to reveal information to him,
or to report back on spying on me.
She went there to tell him what she did. And I don’t think it was because she
felt like sharing intimate details of her goddamned sex life with her father.
When it all hits at once, I literally choke from the weight of it slamming
down on me.
Holy fuck.
“Hades?”
“What—”
“I don’t think Elsa and her sister ran away with their father,” I murmur. “I
think he fucking took them.”
Her eyes fly wide as her hand claps over her mouth.
“Oh my God…”
I yank out my phone and start typing away frantically. I haven’t done this
before, because it would be ethically fucked for me to be tracking Elsa’s
fifteen-year-old sister. That’s why I linked the keychain panic button I gave
Nora and the app monitoring it to Elsa’s phone, not mine.
My heart is racing as the app finishes downloading, and I log in with the
account I set up for Elsa, hoping and praying Nora’s as smart as I think she
is. If I’m right about Leo taking them, I don’t know if he did it separately, or
together. But either way, if Nora kept her wits about her, I’m hoping to God
she remembered to push—
The app pings with a map location.
The button.
Nora fucking pushed the button. And right now, it’s giving me an exact
location to where she is, accurate within a six-foot radius.
Now, I just have to hope that she and Elsa are together.
“Hades?”
“Call your uncle,” I hiss, racing for the door and texting her a screenshot of
the map. “Call my brothers. Call Castle. Call fucking everybody! And tell
them to get their asses to that location, NOW.”
I bolt out the door and sprint down the hospital hallway.
But mostly….
“I’ VE PREPARED YOUR BREAKFAST . Just the way you like it, my love.”
I’m not “creeped out” to be tied to a chair at the kitchen table of the dingy
little house, across from my terrified sister, while Hugo Johansen sets two
plates of poached eggs down in front of us.
My stomach turns as I eye the man I once worked with. The man who
hounded me for fucking years after our three whole dates, before I filed a
restraining order against him.
The man I thought I’d left in my past forever once I moved us to New York.
So stupid.
None of my past has ever stayed there. None of it has remained in England.
First it was Leo who followed me across the Atlantic. And now, it’s Hugo
who’s back to shake my life apart.
When the bomb blew up The Banshee on the night of the soft opening, I was
at Hades’ place getting ready. My phone started going crazy with texts and
social media notifications about it, and when I couldn’t reach Hades, I bolted
out the door in a blind panic.
Leo, with a gun, a bloody knife, and the slain bodies of three men behind him
in the open sliding door of a van with “Athenian Dry-Cleaning” stenciled on
the side of it.
Leo, who then crumpled to the ground as the brick broke in half over his
head, revealing the other nightmare from my past standing behind him,
smiling chillingly at me.
Hugo.
I shiver as my mind replays the manic hours that followed: the sight of Hugo
dragging an unconscious Leo to his car. My freakout when I saw my sister
bound and gagged in his back seat which was only silenced by Hugo digging
the barrel of a gun into my side.
My sobbing pleas for him not to hurt her as I let him shove me into the
passenger seat. Leo’s horrible groans from the trunk as Hugo drove us north
out of the city, following the Hudson up into the Catskills.
The groans finally going silent right before we pulled up to this little house,
which has been our prison ever since.
I swallow, my gaze stabbing out the kitchen window to the brownish lawn
outside with the fresh little mound of dirt in the far corner.
I’m not sure if the irony that one of my demons was slain by the other has
sunk all the way in yet.
Hugo turns away, and my eyes instantly snap to Nora’s across the table.
Her face is pale as a ghost’s, and her eyes are wide and full of terror. But she
nods back at me.
“Don’t you want your breakfast, my love?” Hugo purrs in a voice that feels
like cold slime being poured down my neck. He turns, smiling this creepy,
way-too-focused smile on me. His pupils are dilated, and when my gaze slips
past him, I see the answer to my unspoken question: a little hand mirror
streaked with white powered lines and a rolled-up dollar bill sitting next to
the stove.
“I—”
“I made it just for you. Just the way I know you love it.”
I glance down at the egg in front of me. I’ve had poached eggs maybe twice
in my entire life.
I have zero idea what he’s talking about. But I can see the mania in his eyes,
and it’s not just from the coke.
There’s a reason this man stalked me, and that reason isn’t necessarily “me”.
He’s insane. And between that and the drugs—not to mention the fact that
he’s just kept Nora and I locked in a goddamn windowless basement with a
bucket for a toilet for five days—I am very, very afraid of him and what he’s
capable of doing right now.
“Oh, of course!” I smile. “Yes, I remember now. Mmm, poached eggs, thank
you!”
He glances down to my wrists, which are in fact bound to the arms of the
chair, just as Nora’s are to hers.
Hugo walks closer, and I shiver as he uses a pocketknife to slice off the rope.
But only on one of my wrists.
Even after five days of nothing but water, and peanut butter and jelly
sandwiches with a couple bananas here and there, I have zero appetite. But
again, this man is insane. As would I be not to do what he says.
“Good?”
Hugo grins, turning and lowering his face to the lines of cocaine on the
mirror.
“Hugo?” I venture.
He turns, renewed mania in his eyes as he sniffs loudly and wipes his nose.
“Yes, my love?”
“Don’t.”
It tumbles out of me, and I can’t stop it. Every time he calls me “love” I want
to throw up.
Because I don’t know if the man I do love is alive or dead. I don’t know if his
family is, either. And I’ve spent five days in a black hole doing everything I
can not to think about that, but every time Hugo says that word, I get closer
to exploding.
“Don’t what—”
“What?”
Nora and I both scream as he whirls violently and punches the flimsy wall
next to the stove, sending his fist through it in a cloud of plaster dust.
“You were weak!” he snarls, turning back on me. “And you took another
man.”
“I found his cum on your panties when I broke into your apartment, my love.”
I almost choke, my eyes flaring as the words hit me like a slap in the face.
It wasn’t Leo that broke in that time we went to stay with Hades. It was
Hugo.
“Hugo—”
He spins again, dipping down to snort another line of coke. When he whips
his gaze back to me, it’s glassy. I flinch when he suddenly rushes to my side,
a horrified expression on his face as he crouches down to my eye level.
“It’s all right, you can tell me, Elsa. Just tell me, and I will forgive you. I
know it would be hard for any man to resist you.”
My stomach turns.
I could say yes. I could just say it, and end this. Or at least temper his mania
and his anger.
I can’t.
He stares at me, eyes unblinking and the color draining from his face.
“No,” he whispers.
“Hugo… Sometimes you feel things for someone, and they don’t feel the
same way back—”
“NO!”
“Elsa…”
“I love him,” I choke. “Hugo, there’s someone out there for you, I know there
is! Please! Just… Just let us go.”
“Okay!”
“Okay!”
He frowns. “What?”
“I’ve been so scared of my own feelings. So afraid of what they meant, and
that they were too strong.”
His lips curl into a smile. “What are you saying?” he breathes.
“I’ve always wanted you. Madly, to a truly crazy degree. I was just always so
afraid of how big that felt inside.”
“It was meant to be,” I whisper. “We were meant to be. It’s why and how you
found me again. To show me what true love is.”
I swallow the bile down again, beckoning him closer. I shudder when his
hands slide up my arms.
He groans. “God, Elsa. I’ve waited so long to hear that from your lips.”
But Hugo, I….” I lock eyes with him, then flick them to Nora and back again.
“Not with my sister in the house, you know?”
He grins.
“Can we have some privacy? So that you can show me what real pleasure
is?”
“Hugo?”
Shit.
“Hugo—”
“No,” he snarls, turning to pace the small kitchen. “No, no, no, no, NO! I
remember now why you were always such a good lawyer, Elsa!” he snaps.
“Wait, Hugo—”
Nora screams, and I cry out as his palm smacks me across the face, stunning
me. But when he turns his attention to my sister, it’s my own roar that
explodes through the kitchen.
He ignores me, stalking closer to her, leering down into her face.
Nora pales.
“W-what?”
I gag.
He whirls, levelling the gun at me before turning his monstrous gaze back to
her.
“You’re a virgin?”
“Good.”
I scream, trying to lurch from my chair even though one wrist is still tied to
it. I fumble for my fork, then jolt as Hugo fires a shot into the ceiling.
“SIT. DOWN.”
He turns back to Nora, ignoring my screams and her shaky sobs as he cups
her cheek.
“Don’t cry, my little one. God has saved your innocence all for me. For
today.”
His back is to me, I don’t know for how much longer, but it’s all I’ve got to
work with. I grab the fork from the table, turning it and madly raking and
scraping at the old, frayed rope tying my other wrist to the chair. My skin rips
and bleeds, but the rope gives way.
Hugo starts to turn at the sound of my chair falling backward, but I’m already
on him, stabbing down into his shoulder with the prongs of the fork.
“You bitch!”
But I’m not done, and I am not going down without a fight. I scream again,
lunging at him and stabbing wildly with the fork. Over and over, I only
manage to hit his free hand and the one holding his gun as he stumbles back
trying to block my blows. Finally, I get one thrust past his hands, right into
his face.
Hugo roars as the fork rakes over his eyes, bloodying one of them. He sobs,
falling backwards and writhing on the floor as he clutches his face.
I use my fingers and the fork together to rip and shred the ropes from Nora’s
wrists before yanking her from the chair and out of the kitchen door. It’s
foggy and gray outside, and the ground is wet as it heads down a slope
towards a set of train tracks. The opposite way, the slope leads up to a patch
of woods.
“You need to run!” I blurt, turning and shoving her up the slope in the
direction of the trees.
“No! Elsa—!”
“RUN!”
I shove her and shove her again, looking deep into her eyes.
“PLEASE. RUN.”
She looks at me once more, mute. Then she’s off, zigzagging up the slope
and disappearing into the woods.
Thank God—
I cry out when something slams against my head from behind, turning my
vision blurry as I drop to my hands and knees. I groan, seeing stars, finally
able to stand.
…Only to come face to face with Hugo and his gun. Vicious fury twists his
face—one eye focused lethally on me, the other a horrific, bloody mess.
“But first…”
Fear and adrenaline stab through me like twin knives as Hugo starts to undo
his belt.
“First,” he snarls, “I’ll take what I’ve dreamed of. Not quite how I dreamed
it,” he mutters as he paws at his zipper. “But I bet your cunt still tastes just as
fucking sweet—”
I don’t pause to see how much damage I’ve done. I just turn, and I fucking
run.
When I hear the roar of Hugo’s wrath behind me, I can’t help it. It’s like an
automatic response.
I look back.
Oh God.
He’s running like a maniac after me, one eye gushing blood down his face.
His good one is locked onto me.
Not Nora.
I bolt down the hill towards the commuter rail tracks. On the other side of
them, there’s an even steeper hill that plunges down toward a road that runs
parallel with a river I’m just now realizing is the Hudson.
Hugo’s fist crashes into my face. The taste of copper floods my mouth as I go
toppling backwards, crying out as the back of my head slams against the
ground. Lights and black spots swim through my stunned vision.
Oh God…
I scream, choking as Hugo grabs me by the hair and yanks me up. He pulls
me sobbing and screaming to the tracks, holding me down, my heels kicking
against the rail closest to us.
It starts to vibrate.
“Fourteen past the hour, Elsa,” Hugo growls, his good eye piercing right
through me. “Like fucking clockwork.”
The rattling sound of the rails grows louder, and the vibrations against my
heels become harder. My eyes swivel to the side, and whatever color is left in
my face drains right away.
Down the tracks, maybe a mile away, a commuter train is barreling straight at
us.
“Hugo—”
“You could have had me,” he hisses, his eye twitching. “I would have given
you the world. We were soul mates, Elsa.”
“Never,” I spit.
The thundering sound of the train roars closer. The pebbles over the rail struts
begin to bounce and jump.
Not. Ever.
My eyes drop to Hugo’s belt. It’s buckled again from when he was trying to
yank it off before, but it’s loose.
“And when you’re dead,” Hugo grins wolfishly, his arms tensing as if
readying to throw me into the path of the train. “I will feast on your baby
sister’s screams. But you won’t be able to hear them. Because you, my dear
Elsa…well, you’ll be dead.”
My hand juts out, slipping through the loose belt around his waist until the
crook of my elbow is tight against it. Hugo’s eyes go wide.
I throw myself backward across the tracks, Hugo slamming down on top of
me.
His eyes bulge as the deafening scream of a train whistle rips over us; once,
twice, over and over, as the very metal of the rails underneath us begins to
shake like the world itself is breaking apart.
Hugo’s screaming and roaring, trying to break free. But I lock my legs
around his waist, and my eyes stab into his.
“LET GO OF ME!”
“LET GO!”
I close my eyes.
I think of Nora.
I love you—
Except, I’m not underneath it. I’m rolling sideways off the tracks, a firm
body holding me, powerful arms gripping me tight as I roll to a stop.
Hades.
The train whistle rips through the air. The sound of wrenching metal splits
my ears. My head whips to the side just as Hugo lurches to his feet, feverish
mania in his eyes.
“SHE’S MI—”
I scream, unable to look away as the Metro North commuter train turns Hugo
into a crimson mist.
Hades covers my face with his arm, turning me aside and holding me tight as
I cling to him.
“You’re okay,” he chokes into my ear, kissing my face as I sob against him.
“You’re okay.”
“Nora—!”
We lock eyes as the train roars past us, speeding away down the tracks.
I crush my lips to his, kissing him madly as the tears stream down my face.
“…You.”
EPILOGUE
“C ALL ME , OKAY ?”
Nora rolls her eyes in the dramatic way only a teenager can pull off.
“Yes, Mother.”
I glare at her. “Don’t do that. You know I hate when you call me that.”
“Good night, Theo,” I sigh, giving a wave as the black Escalade pulls away
from the curb and cruises away.
I groan, turning to see Hades behind me, lounging on the front steps of his
building.
“Slightly, yes.”
I turn back, watching Nora drive off with Theo, another boy and a girl I know
from her grade, and another girl I don’t know.
“Theo’s not after your sister, don’t worry. One, he knows I’ll fucking castrate
him if he even tries to touch her. And two, he’s got a crush on Galina.”
I frown. “Galina?”
“The other girl in the car.” Hades smirks. “Russian. Her dad works for
Gavan. So that could get real interesting real quick.”
For now, when it comes to the Reznikov Bratva, there’s still a ceasefire. Not
a truce, a ceasefire. The Drakos and Kildare families are not now suddenly
allies of the Russians. But no one has any plans to kill each other in the
streets. At least, not today.
So that’s a plus.
“Also, she’s still got that panic button on her keys,” Hades adds.
“Yeah? Good.”
A smell of pure deliciousness hits me the second we step off the elevator and
onto the top floor. Dinner tonight is takeout from Shank that Hades went and
picked up earlier, which I know was also an excuse to check in on Maya,
Sean’s girlfriend.
She’s doing well, or at least the best that can be expected right now. Since
Sean’s memorial service, which was really lovely, his family has taken her in
as one of their own. Last I heard, she’s actually living with them.
My eyes slide to the piles of documents and contracts covering the dining
room table.
I’m seriously in fucking awe of Callie and the Kildare sisters. Nothing stops
them, not even a bomb that almost killed them.
Since the damage from the blast pretty much totaled the building, including
the floors above it, the rest of the unit owners took their insurance money and
ran, selling cheap to Neve, Eilish, and Callie. The plans for the new and even
better Banshee include not just a pub and a downstairs lounge, but a
restaurant taking up the top two floors.
They’re in talks with Maya to see about luring her away from Shank. I hope
she agrees to the plan.
On the plant-filled balcony, Hades is already setting out plates and opening a
dusty and old looking bottle of barolo when I step outside.
“Hang on.”
He stops me before I take a seat, walking me across the gorgeously lush patio
to the edge of the roof overlooking lower Manhattan, across the river.
“Oh?”
“Yeah. Building permits.”
“For?”
He grins. “I’ve been thinking about finally getting around to doing the rest of
this building. You know, finishing up the lower floors.”
My brows arch as I sink against his firm chest, relishing the feel of his strong
arms around me.
“Oh, really?”
“Yeah.”
I laugh. “Hades, you already have, what, three thousand square feet up here?”
“But I was thinking I might have two new roommates to think about, too.”
“Sell your place,” he growls. “The market is great right now. You’ll clean
up.”
I stare at him.
“And Nora?”
“I want you in my house,” he growls. “So yeah, that’s a sacrifice I’m willing
to make. She’s a good kid, anyway.”
“Hades…”
He holds up the box, opening it and letting the garden lights twinkle over the
huge solitaire diamond ring inside.
“This is the part where you say yes, if that wasn’t clear.”
A dark, lethal shadow crosses his face. “Then I tie you to my fucking bed like
a proper Persephone and keep you forever anyway.”
I grin.
“Yeah?”
“Definitely.”
Suddenly, our mouths are slamming together, and I’m kissing him hard and
falling back into one of the lounge chairs.
I cry out as his head slips between my thighs, and when his tongue drags up
my wet pussy lips, I melt. He’s a mix of aggressive and soft, and being with
him is always like dancing with a loaded gun. His tongue swirls around my
clit, driving me up the wall as his powerful hands shove my knees up and
back.
He groans when his fingers slip lower, finding the gold plug already in my
ass.
I might have gotten more than a little comfortable with wearing it these days.
I whimper when he tugs on the base of it, turning it in a slow circle inside my
ass as his tongue does the same thing to my clit. The sensation is mind-
blowing, and when my body starts to shake and writhe beneath him, he only
drags it out even more.
“Eager little kitten,” he growls against my thigh before plunging his tongue
into me.
I throw my head back, my cries filling the night air as Hades teases my body
into a sweating, whimpering, shuddering mess.
His lips fasten around my clit, his tongue swirling around it as he sucks. And
suddenly, my whole body convulses as the trigger inside me is pulled.
I scream and scream, my thighs clamping around his head and my back
arching as the orgasm rips through me. I’m barely over the brink, and still
clawing at the edges of my sanity when he moves up between my legs.
Oh God yes.
His swollen cock slams into me, forcing the air from my lungs as my eyes go
wide. I moan, crushing my lips to his as my legs wrap tight around his
muscled hips. One hand wraps around my throat, the other pinning my wrists
above my head.
And I lose all control. Like I always do with this man who destroys my
control. My inhibitions. My walls. As if that’s exactly what he was born to
do.
I moan into his lips as he kisses me, our bodies grinding together desperately
as his hips roll. His gorgeous cock rams into me over and over, his pubic
bone hitting my clit with each thrust as my nipples drag electrically against
his chest.
“Hades…”
“I want you to fucking come for me, kitten,” he groans into my lips. “Let me
feel that sweet, juicy little pussy come for my big fucking cock, like a good
girl.”
He sinks all the way into me, making me feel so fucking full between him and
the plug. His hand squeezes around my throat just enough to send me reeling
into the stratosphere.
And suddenly, I slam my lips to his, screaming my release into his mouth as I
come like a thermonuclear explosion. Hades groans out his release, kissing
me like I belong to him as he buries his throbbing cock deep. His cum spills
into me as my legs lock around his hips and my lips sear to his.
When we’re done, we both look like we’ve competed against each other in
gladiatorial combat. I’m covered in delicious bruises and marks from his
mouth and hands, shaking and trembling on the couch back inside with one
leg and one arm hanging off it. Hades is collapsed on the floor next to me,
both of us gasping for air with a sheen of sweat across our spent bodies.
I giggle. “Sorry. When Nora and I move in, I’m not so sure you and I will be
able to do this.”
“Sex?”
I blush. “On the dining room table, the living room floor, and against the
refrigerator? Uh, no, not so much.”
“Exactly why do you think I’m going to be renovating a whole fucking floor
for her?” he grins, groaning as he pushes off the floor and onto the couch,
scooping me into his arms. “Not to mention making sure it’s got extra sound
proofing?”
“Um…”
“So that she never has to come up here, where we’ll be spending our time
fucking on every goddamn surface at every goddamn hour of every goddamn
day.”
“Will you love me less if I mention that my cock is still hungry for you?”
I groan, giggling as I twist in his arms. I shiver as my legs spread over either
side of his grooved hips.
“Nope.”
“Good kitten.”
This isn’t an epilogue or continuation to Sinful Hearts. But this extra hot
“follow-up” story is guaranteed to keep the steam going.
SAVAGE HEIR
Thank you so much for reading Sinful Hearts! If you enjoyed the book, I’d be
incredibly grateful if you could leave a review!
You can find complete book lists and suggested reading orders on my
website.
www.jaggercolewrites.com
Chapter 1
Tenley
“You can’t actually be serious.”
“Of course I’m serious. All the sports programs here are way too competitive
for me to have a prayer at getting into, and the math team doesn’t have its
first meeting until halfway through the term.”
My roommate pales, shaking her head. “No, you need to find something else.
Seriously. Look, I know this is all new to you, but I’m telling you—”
Okay, I’ve done it a million times before in public school, in North Carolina
and then DC after we moved there. I’ve never done it at the single most
exclusive, prestigious private preparatory school in the world.
But just the same… tutoring is tutoring, isn’t it? And apparently, even at the
Oxford Hills Academy, which guides the world’s most elite, connected, and
—let’s be real—rich students get into whatever higher education best suits
their perfect pedigrees, there are still ones who need a leg up.
“Tenley…” Charlotte’s lips are thin, and the color has fully left her face as it
shakes back and forth. “You can’t tutor him. You can’t go near him.”
My brow furrows as I turn with a smirk. “Charlotte, I helped with SAT prep
in some of the most dangerous schools in DC.” I glance around at the
stunningly gorgeous living area—complete with Tudor-style paned glass
windows, curved, intricate ceiling beams, wood inlay shelves of books, and a
fireplace that would fit right in at Hogwarts. “I mean, look where we are. I’m
sure I’ll be—”
“They call him ‘The Wolf’ for a reason, Tenley,” she hisses quietly.
I swallow. It’s not the first time I’ve heard the nickname.
In the three days since I moved into the student housing with Charlotte, I’ve
heard the moniker whispered like a curse, or maybe a prayer, throughout the
common areas of campus.
I’ve looked him up online. I mean how do you not after a nickname like that.
I’ve never even met him or seen him face-to-face. But one Google image
search later and I fully understood why he’s the Wolf.
Because when that man looks into a camera lens, it’s like a predator ready to
pounce on his prey.
Well, that and the fact that his last name is literally Russian for “wolf”, I
guess. His last name is also as synonymous with organized crime in Russia as
“Capone” would be in the states. In fact, his uncle is the Yuri Volkov, head
of the notoriously brutal and cold-blooded Volkov Bratva family.
My face flushes as I think back to the face of Ilya spread across the search
engine page. Dark hair, green eyes, and the chiseled good looks and bone
structure of an aristocratic model. But the whole visage is washed in a
brooding darkness that you can’t help but shiver at.
Just like I do, right now, even thinking of it. But I steel myself and shake that
shiver off. Ilya Volkov might be “The Wolf.” He might—allegedly—be heir
apparent to one of the most dangerous, powerful, and wealthy crime families
in the world. He might, bewilderingly, be on academic probation after some
issues last year.
But I won’t let any of that affect me or throw me off. Because all of this is
part of The Plan.
Okay, so The Plan has been slightly edited by the media and consulting team
surrounding my father’s anticipated political moves. But it’s still mostly The
Plan I’ve had in my head since I was twelve.
Lofty? Perhaps. Impossible? Not with The Plan, which is why I have it.
In the last year, though, The Plan has changed. Sort of. It’s been “recolored,”
as Jill, my father’s new PR chief, put it. Because The Plan now involves a lot
more than me.
The Plan now involves my father possibly becoming the next Vice President
of the United States.
But there’s “doing well” for normal people, and then there’s “doing well” for
the kind of people whose kids go to Oxford Hills.
The students here are the upper echelon—the elite of the world’s elite. The
sons and daughters of billionaire tycoons, oligarchs, and royalty—literal, real
royalty. I’m from an upper-middle-class suburb and public school. The other
students here are from actual castles, or houses with their own zip codes, and
have never washed a single teaspoon.
But six months ago, my dad was approached by Senator George North. The
New York Senator is highly speculated, by the entire political media
spectrum, to be the next President of the United States. He’s already gotten a
thumbs-up from the soon to be exiting current POTUS, and his team has
picked my father to be his potential running mate when he announces.
Six months ago, life got very complicated. Suddenly, public school and the
burbs wasn’t enough. Being a model student with the highest marks possible
wasn’t enough. No, I needed “elite status.” I needed “pedigree.”
So, here I am: out of DC and across the ocean to the bucolic English
countryside where Oxford Hills sits. Here, my image will be “perfected” by
elite classes, elite friends, and an elite boyfriend.
Patrick North, Senator North’s son, is also at Oxford Hills. Though, he’s been
here for the last three years, given that his father is a US Senator and
billionaire investor. Granted, I’m not a political PR expert. But the idea of the
soon-to-be-President’s son dating the soon-to-be-Vice-President’s daughter
seems… gross to me. Jill and the PR team, however, thinks it’s a slam-dunk
for the polls. Senator North agrees, and my dad seems to just be along for the
wild ride.
So now I have a new school, a new country, and a new fake boyfriend to pose
for the cameras with.
But at least the new roommate is all sorts of awesome. Charlotte’s like me.
Which is to say, being here gives her imposter-syndrome to the max, too.
Char’s been at Oxford Hills for a year already. But like me, she doesn’t really
belong here.
That’s basically how we became fast friends two months ago when we were
notified we’d be roommates this term at Oxford Hills. A single phone call
turned into almost nightly FaceTiming, and now we’re best friends. And all
because of the joke that the only reason we’ve been put together as
roommates is because we’re the “imposters.”
“Tenley.”
“You can’t—”
I glance outside through the elegant paned windows at the rain pouring down
on the English countryside. I pull up the hood of my burgundy raincoat and
turn back to the mirror. My blue eyes meet their reflection. I tuck an errant
lock of red hair behind my ear, under the hood, and I take a breath.
Okay, I can do this. It’s all for The Plan. And Supreme Court Justice and
Time Magazine Person of the Year Tenley Chambers is not afraid of the Big
Bad Wolf.
I glance back at Charlotte, curled on the couch, and smile. “I’ll be back in an
hour or so I guess.”
“Yeah, unless he eats you,” she mumbles with a worried frown. I roll my
eyes, wave, and turn to head out the door into the rain.
Student housing at Oxford Hills is quaint, but moneyed. There aren’t big
buildings full of dorms with communal bathrooms or anything like at other
private schools. Students are paired two to a “cottage”—whimsically
beautiful Tudor-style houses arranged in quads with three others just like it,
with a shared, gorgeously manicured and landscaped backyard area.
Outside, I tighten my hood against the downpour and trudge across campus.
The housing address for Ilya that the student services office gave me simply
says “Lordship Manor.” I haven’t explored much of campus since I moved in
three days ago. But an online map had it situated on the far side of the stables
—yes, there are stables—and past the archery range. Yes, there’s an archery
range.
My rain boots splash through puddles along the slate and cobblestone
walkways that crisscross the grounds of Oxford Hills. There are only a few
other people out in this weather, but they seem to ignore me even when I give
a wave.
I’m quickly learning that the children of the world’s elite aren’t the friendliest
bunch.
I pass the stables, smiling at the smell of hay and horses. The archery range is
empty and gray in the downpour. I’ve got my head down to ward off the rain,
so I don’t notice the wall and the gate until I’m almost smacking into it.
Past the ivy-covered stone wall and ornate iron gate, is a stunning old home.
It looks like it belongs on the grounds of Versailles or something—a huge,
beautiful and yet imposing stone manor, half-covered in ivy. Black-iron
windows dot the facade, and the front door looks like it would withstand a
siege from a rival kingdom.
I’m about to dig my phone out and figure out how close I am to Ilya’s cottage
when my eyes suddenly snap to the words carved into the stone wall next to
the gate. My mouth falls open in shock when I read “Lordship Manor.”
This is where Ilya Volkov lives? It’s no cottage. It’s a fucking castle. I shake
my head in disbelief. But, this is it, alright. And palace or not, the student I’m
supposed to tutor in order to bulk up my resume is in there.
I tremble as I push the gate open and step through. I fast-walk up the stone
walkway to the enormous, black iron and old-wood door. There’s no
doorbell.
I frown. What the hell am I supposed to do, use a battering ram? Have my
squire call up to the Lord of the realm?
I take a breath, haul my fist back, and pound. Then I pound again, and again.
Finally, I hear the sound of a lock being drawn back. The door cracks and
then swings open. I blink in surprise.
The girl is not who I expected. She’s… stunning. Tall, leggy, blonde, and
absolutely gorgeous. And here I am standing in the pouring rain in a baggy
red raincoat, hair stuck to my face, no makeup, looking like a shipwreck
survivor.
The wrinkled-nose look of disdain she gives me seems to back that up.
“Who are you?” She sneers in a haughty, posh British accent. Her manicured
brow arches with distaste.
“I—I’m the…”
I suddenly realize there’s a party going on behind her. The inside of the
manor is even more gorgeous than the outside. And it’s full of students
drinking, dancing, making out, smoking cigarettes—and something else by
the smell of it—and roaring with laughter. Music thuds.
She suddenly smiles widely. “Oh! Oh, no, honey,” her smile thins. “We
won’t need the maid service until tomorrow. And when you do come back,
do make sure you come through the service entrance at the back, yeah?”
She starts to shut the door in my face. But my rain boot juts out to stop her.
She looks at me like I’ve just peed on the royal jewels.
“Are you fucking—”
“I’m actually the tutor?” I smile weakly. Then I take a breath and compose
myself. I stand a little taller. “I’m the tutor. I’m here for Ilya.”
She grins widely. “You’re sure you’re looking for Ilya. Ilya Volkov.”
Good grief.
“Stay here, I’ll get him.” She starts to turn. But then she glances back at me
and shakes her head. “You’re sure about this?”
“Pardon me?”
She chuckles as her eyes slide up and down over me, like she’s sizing me up.
Her lips smirk.
“Oh, hon,” she shakes her head and gives me a faux-sympathetic look. “Just
remember, you had the chance to run, and didn’t.”
She shuts the door. I stand there in the pouring rain, blinking and trying to
figure out what the hell just happened.
The minutes tick by. After about five of them, I realize I’m being pranked, or
hazed or something. Yeah, screw this. I can tutor anyone. But I don’t need to
deal with this mean-girl shit.
As I start to turn to head back home, though, I hear the door creak. I roll my
eyes, ready to give miss Ice Queen the finger. Slowly, I turn with the sneer on
my lip as the door swings open.
The dark hair, the piercing green eyes. The dark, menacing look on his
perfectly chiseled face. My eyes drop, and I blush.
He’s also shirtless. Shirtless, and… built. And tattooed to hell and back. My
face burns as my eyes drink in the broad, muscled shoulders, the lines of his
photoshop-perfect chest and abs, and the grooves of his hips diving into the
waist of his black jeans.
I slowly drag my eyes up to his stern but slightly amused face. And I tremble.
He leans against the doorframe holding a crystal tumbler with what looks like
whiskey or scotch in it. His cold, amused gaze sweeps over me.
His smirk deepens. “Well are we doing this outside in the rain or in my
room?”
He chuckles darkly. I glance past him at the raging party going on.
“Look, if you’re in the middle of something, I can always come back later—”
“I’m ready right now.” He shrugs, his eyes never blinking or leaving mine.
“We could go right there on the floor in the middle of it, if an audience is
your thing.”
He shrugs. “I know what you want, and that works for me just fine.”
My frown deepens. “You know what I—” I shake my head. “I’m Tenley.”
“And I’ve got things to do, Tenley,” he grunts thinly. “So if it’s a shag you’re
so desperate for, why don’t you turn around, lift that skirt, and say please.”
His lips grin; the spliff still dangling from them as smoke curls around his
piercing green eyes.
I don’t know what takes ahold of me. I just know that I am not putting up
with frat-boy bullshit like this. I’ll take the being relocated to another fucking
country. I’ll deal with the fake boyfriend crap. I’ll cater my perfect Plan to fit
the new realities of my life. I’ll even deal with snobby rich brats talking down
to me because I wasn’t born with a jeweled scepter up my ass.
Without really thinking it through, my hand darts out. I snatch the glass from
his hands, haul back, and splash the contents of it right into his face.
I swear, the music behind him stops. The people behind him freeze and stare
with horrified expressions. And it’s only then that I truly realize what I’ve
just done.
I just threw a drink in the face of The Wolf—heir apparent to the most brutal
mafia family in the world.
And yet, he says nothing. He doesn’t even blink. His gorgeous face drips
with scotch. The spliff in his lips dangles limp and soaked against his chin
before he spits it out. His jaw grinds.
But suddenly, a fire sparks like molten green magic in his eyes. I gasp as he
rapidly closes the short distance between us. His hand juts out, and I choke
on my breath as he grabs the front of my raincoat at the neck in a fist. Fear
spikes through me as he yanks me hard into him.
The glass drops from my fingers, landing in the wet grass next to the
walkway. The hood falls back off my head. Rain pours down over the both of
us in sheets as those eyes burn like green fire right into mine. His perfect lips
pull back into an animal snarl, white teeth flashing in fury.
I’m petrified. I can’t even scream, let alone try and break free and run for my
very life. All I can do is shake as my wide eyes stare up into his.
The seconds tick by as I wait for death. Until finally, his mouth opens.
“Run away, little red,” he snarls thickly and quietly. His grip tightens, almost
choking me with the neck of my coat. “Run away, before I eat you up.”
He shoves me back and lets go. I don’t think. I don’t ask what he means. The
fight or flight internal war is over in a quarter second: flight wins.
I turn, and I run as fast as I can from the big, bad Wolf of Oxford Hills.
Keep reading!
Savage Heir - Exclusively on Amazon and in Kindle Unlimited!
Dark Hearts:
Deviant Hearts
Vicious Hearts
Sinful Hearts
Twisted Hearts
Savage Heirs:
Savage Heir
Dark Prince
Brutal King
Forbidden Crown
Broken God
Defiant Queen
Bratva’s Claim:
Paying The Bratva’s Debt
The Bratva’s Stolen Bride
Hunted By The Bratva Beast
His Captive Bratva Princess
Owned By The Bratva King
The Bratva’s Locked Up Love
Power:
Tyrant
Outlaw
Warlord
Standalones:
Broken Lines
Bosshole
Grumpaholic
Stalker of Mine
ABOUT THE AUTHOR
A reader first and foremost, Jagger Cole cut his romance writing teeth penning various steamy fan-
fiction stories years ago. After deciding to hang up his writing boots, Jagger worked in advertising
pretending to be Don Draper. It worked enough to convince a woman way out of his league to marry
him, though, which is a total win.
Now, Dad to two little princesses and King to a Queen, Jagger is thrilled to be back at the keyboard.
When not writing or reading romance books, he can be found woodworking, enjoying good whiskey,
and grilling outside - rain or shine.